Dmgt548 Global HRM
Dmgt548 Global HRM
Dmgt548 Global HRM
DMGT548
GLOBAL HRM
Copyright © 2013 P L RAO
All rights reserved
1. Take decisions regarding recruiting methods, selection procedures and staffing decisions for expatriate employees.
2. Design a training program using an effective framework for evaluating training needs, designing a training program,
and evaluating training results.
3. Properly interpret salary survey data, design a pay structure and monitor the implementation of performance-based pay
system and design employee benefit schemes.
6. Global HR issues in the host context: standardization and adaption of work practices, retaining, developing and
retrenching staff, language standardization, monitoring HR practices.
7. International industrial relations: issues, responses of trade unions to multinational, regional Integration.
8. Multinational performance management: Challenge, performance management and performance appraisal of
international employees, appraisal of HCN employees.
9. HRM in cross border merges and acquisitions: Motives behind mergers and acquisitions, HR Interventions.
10. Understanding human behaviour in global perspective – issues in organization culture, cultural diversity at
work, motivation and communication across culture, cross cultural leadership, multi cultural teams. Comparison
of Indian HRM with those of UK, USA, Japan and China.
CONTENTS
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
1.1.2 Expatriates
1.6 Keywords
Objectives
Describe the variables that moderate differences between HRM and GHRM
Notes Introduction
Globalisation is the process of international integration arising from the interchange of world
views, products, ideas, and other aspects of culture. According to the Levin Institute, the term
globalisation refers to the increasing connections people, companies and states are forming
around the world. The process of forming social and economic ties across vast distances is
nothing new historically; however, technological improvements and liberal trade agreements
have increased these connections greatly in contemporary times. Advances in transportation
and telecommunications infrastructure, including the rise of the Internet, are major factors in
globalisation, generating further interdependence of economic and cultural activities. With
globalisation, companies moving out of political boundaries have also enhanced the need for
human resource functions to go global.
In this unit, we will learn about Global HRM, the drivers of globalisation and also the variables
that moderate differences between HRM and GHRM.
With the advent of globalisation, organisations – big or small have ceased to be local, they have
become global! This has increased the workforce diversity and cultural sensitivities have emerged
like never before. International dimensions of business and the globalisation of business have
a significant impact on human resource management. All this led to the development of Global
Human Resource Management.
HRM refers to those activities undertaken by an organisation to utilise its human resources
effectively. Human resource management (HRM) as a business practice comprises several
processes, which used together are supposed to achieve the theoretical goals mentioned above.
These practical processes include:
Workforce planning
Skills management
Training and development
Personnel administration
Time management
Performance appraisal
Global HRM is the process of recruiting, allocating and effectively utilising the human resource
in multinational corporations across the national boundaries. Firms operating in international
markets face different conditions and competitions. Multinationals are characterised by an
interdependence of resources and responsibilities across all business units regardless of national
boundaries. These companies have to cope with large flows of components, products, resources,
people and information among their subsidiaries and this demands a complex process of Notes
coordination and cooperation involving strong cross-unit integrating devices, a strong corporate
identity and a well developed worldwide management perspective. National cultural traits also
play a critical role in the conduct of business by influencing customer preferences and the
values, beliefs and behaviour of employees. Thus, culture affects both internal and external
perspectives of management, including the cost of doing business and its results. People play a
key role in any type of business activity but their role has become very critical in the new
economy and service sector.
Even those organisations who consider themselves immune to transactions across geographical
boundaries are connected to the wider network globally. They are in one way or the other
dependent upon organisations that may even not have heard about. There is interdependence
between organisations in various areas and functions.
The preliminary function of global Human Resource Management is that the organisation
carries a local appeal in the host country despite maintaining an international feel. All HRM
functions are carried out in a global context.
The field of Global Human Resource Management has been characterised by three broad
approaches.
2. Secondly, a comparative industrial relations and HRM literature seeks to describe compare
and analyse HRM systems in various countries.
2. Generating awareness of cross cultural sensitivities among managers globally and hiring
of staff across geographic boundaries.
Did u know?
1. Licensing – a technique of market entry wherein the firm do not bear the costs and
risks of entering into the foreign market on its own but generate revenue from the
royalties after the transfer of technological know-how.
2. Joint venture – a cooperative agreement between two firms to enter into a new
market jointly.
The strategic role of Human resources Management in such a scenario is to ensure that HRM
policies are in tandem with and in support of the firm’s strategy, structure and controls.
Notes Specifically, when we talk of structures and controls the following become worth mentioning in
the context of Global HRM.
1.1.2 Expatriates
In its broadest sense, an expatriate is any person living in a different country from where he is
a citizen. In common usage, the term is often used in the context of professionals sent abroad by
their companies, as opposed to locally hired staff. The differentiation found in common usage
usually comes down to socio-economic factors, so skilled professionals working in another
country are described as expatriates, whereas a manual labourer who has moved to another
country to earn more money might be labelled an 'immigrant'. There is no set definition and
usage does vary depending on context and individual preferences and prejudices.
The term 'expatriate' in some countries also has a legal context used for tax purposes. An expatriate
living in a country can receive a favourable tax treatment. In this context a person can only be an
expatriate if they move to a country other than their own to work with the intent of returning to
their home country within a certain period. The number of years can vary per tax jurisdiction,
but 5 years is the most commonly used maximum period. If you are not affected by taxes 3 years
is normally the maximum time spent in one country.
International corporations often have a company-wide policy and coaching system that includes
spouses at an earlier stage in the decision-making process. Not many companies provide any
compensation for loss of income of expatriate spouses, although they often do provide other
benefits and assistance. The level of support differs, ranging from offering a job-hunting course
for spouses at the new location to full service partner support structures, run by volunteering
spouses supported by the organization.
There are several advantages and disadvantages of using expatriate employees to staff
international company subsidiaries. Advantages include, permitting closer control and
coordination of international subsidiaries and providing a broader global perspective.
Disadvantages include high transfer costs, the possibility of encountering local government
restrictions, and possibly creating a problem of adaptability to foreign environments.
HR departments often use services of relocation companies, who assist expats in moving abroad
as well as managing expat's related administrative issues such as: assignment management,
financial management and reporting to name a few.
There are three basic sources, the MNCs can tap for overseas positions:
Parent Country Nationals (PCNs): PCNs are managers who are citizens of the country where
the MNC is headquartered. In fact, sometimes the term ‘headquarter’s nationals’ is also used.
These managers are commonly called expatriates or, simply, exports, which refers to those who
live and work away from their parent country. There are a variety of reasons for using PCNs. Notes
The most common reason was to start up operations. MNCs prefer to have their own people
launch a new venture. The second most common reason was that the parent country people had
the necessary managerial and technical expertise (Tung, 1982).
Host Country Nationals (HCNs): HCNs are local managers who are hired by the MNC. There
are many reasons for hiring them at the lower or middle-level ranks. Many countries require
the MNC to hire local talent as part of opening their markets to MNCs. For example, in Brazil,
two-thirds of employees in any foreign subsidiary have to be Brazilian nationals. In India too,
before approving joint venture agreements, the government restricts the number of expatriates
to be employed, primarily to limit the foreign exchange outflow and to prepare Indian nationals
to undertake the responsibility at a future time.
PCNs fill usually top positions, but this is not always the case. For example, companies following
the multi-domestic philosophy or polycentric approach would select most positions, including
top ones, from the host country, but usually after starting the operations.
Example: Hindustan Lever Ltd., a subsidiary of the Unilever group in India is currently
headed by an Indian.
Tung (1981) identified four reasons for use of host country managers:
3. They are less expensive and know the way things are done, the rules of local market and
how to get things done or who can influence; and
Third Country Nationals (TCNs): TCNs are managers who are citizens of countries other than
the one in which the MNC is headquartered or the one in which it is assigned to work by the
MNC. Tung (1991) found that the two most important reasons that American MNCs use third
country nationals are:
1. The three broad human resource activities: Procurement, allocation, and utilisation.
Notes 2. The three national or country categories involved in international HRM activities: The
host-country where a subsidiary may be located, the home (parent) country where the
firm is headquartered, and ‘other’ countries that may be the source of labour or finance.
Example: IBM employs Australian citizens (HCNs) in its Australian operations, often
sends U.S. citizens (PCNs) to Asia-Pacific countries on assignments, and may send some of its
Singapore employees on an assignment to its Japanese operations (as TCNs).
Morgan defines international HRM as the interplay among these three dimensions – human
resource activities, types of employees, and countries of operation. International HRM involves
the same activities as domestic HRM (example, procurement refers to HR planning and staffing);
however, domestic HRM is involved with employees within only a single national boundary.
The complexities of operating in different countries and employing different national categories
of workers are a key variable that differentiates domestic and international HRM, rather than
any major differences between HRM activities performed.
The interesting aspect of working internationally is that we have to work with people
who have different cultural heritages. Cultural differences should be taken into account
when communicating and interacting across nations and across cultures within nations.
Although multinational companies are supranational in operations and strategy, people
within them do not necessarily share the same cultural values and views on people and
life. The multinational model is built on the premise that it is necessary to understand
cultural differences, rather than trying to smooth them over or override them. For example,
companies like IBM may have a strong corporate culture, but one of the aspects that the
Contd...
work of Hofstede (1980a) demonstrated was that within IBM, there is wide cultural variation Notes
across nations.
Hofstede’s work focuses on ‘value systems’ of national cultures which are represented by
four dimensions:
1. Power distance: This is the extent to which inequalities among people are seen as
normal. This dimension stretches from equal relations being seen as normal to wide
inequalities being viewed as normal.
The HRM uses four terms to describe MNCs which approaches to managing and staffing their
subsidiaries: ethnocentric, polycentric, regiocentric, and geocentric. Perlmutter identified and
claimed that. It was possible to identify among international executive three primary attitudes-
ethnocentric, polycentric, and geocentric–toward building a multinational enterprise, based on
top management assumptions upon which key product, functional, an geographical decisions
were made. A fourth attitude, regiocentric was added later.
1. Ethnocentric: Few foreign subsidiaries have any autonomy; strategic decisions are made
at headquarters. Key positions at the domestic and foreign operations are held by
management personnel of headquarters. These subsidiaries are managed by expatriates
from the home country (PCNs).
2. Polycentric: The MNC treats each subsidiary as a distinct national entity with some decision-
making autonomy. Subsidiaries are usually managed by local nationals (HCNs) who are
seldom promoted to positions at headquarters. PCNs are rarely transferred to foreign
subsidiary operations.
3. Geocentric: The MNC takes a worldwide approach to its operations, recognising that each
part (subsidiaries and headquarters) makes a unique contribution with its unique
competence. Nationality is ignored in favour of ability.
Example: The Chief Executive Officer of the Swedish Multinationals Electrolux claims
that within this global company there is no tradition to hire managing directors from Sweden,
or locally, but to find the person best suited for the job.
4. Regiocentric: Reflects the geographic strategy and structure of the multinational. It utilises
a wider pool of managers but in a limited way. Personnel may move outside their countries
but only within the particular geographic region. Regional managers may not be promoted
to headquarter positions but enjoy a degree of regional autonomy in decision-making.
Notes Above categories refer to managerial attitudes that reflect the socio-cultural environment
in which the internationalising firm is embedded. The strategic importance of the foreign
market, the maturity of the operation, and the degree of cultural distance between the
parent and host country, influence the manner in which the firm approaches a particular
staffing decision.
Example: MNC may operate its European interests in a regiocentric manner and its
Southeast Asian interests in an ethnocentric way until there is greater confidence in operating in
that region of the world.
Task Critically analyse the factors that has contributed to the globalisation of the Indian
firms and the advantages of the same.
Self Assessment
2. Global HRM aims to create a local appeal without compromising upon the …………
identity.
4. Regiocentric is the geographic strategy and structure of the multinational. Personnel may
move outside their countries but only ………… the particular geographic region.
5. Key positions at the domestic and foreign operations are held by management personnel
of headquarters, in ……… approach.
Globalisation involves the diffusion of ideas, practices and technologies. It is something more
than internationalisation and universalisation. It isn’t simply modernisation or westernisation.
It is certainly not only the liberalisation of markets. Anthony Giddens (1990: 64) has described
globalisation as ‘the intensification of worldwide social relations which link distant localities in
such a way that local happenings are shaped by events occurring many miles away and vice
versa’. This involves a change in the way we understand geography and experience localness. As
well as offering opportunity it brings with considerable risks linked, for example, to technological
change. Globalisation, thus, has powerful economic, political, cultural and social dimensions.
Though several scholars place the origins of globalisation in modern times, others trace its
history long before the European age of discovery and voyages to the New World. Some even
trace the origins to the third millennium BCE. Since the beginning of the 20th century, the pace
of globalisation has proceeded at an exponential rate.
Market Drivers
Technology Drivers
Government Drivers
Competitive Drivers
One of the primary drivers of globalisation has been in respect to market forces, whereby many
consumer goods and services are now universally available, no matter one’s geographic location
or social setting. As a result of international marketing campaigns and corporate brand
promotions, consumer desires and lifestyles around the world are increasingly converging.
As corporations pursue growth through globalisation, they have encountered new challenges
that impose limits to their growth and potential profits. Corporate social responsibility helps
them sustain a competitive advantage by using their social contributions to provide a
subconscious level of advertising.
Globalisation of markets: It refers to the merging of national markets into one huge global
marketplace. Now selling internationally is easier due to falling barriers to cross-border trade.
A company doesn’t have to be the size of these multinational giants to facilitate and benefit from
the globalisation of markets. They can offer a standard product to the worldwide but it is not
possible as there are very significant differences that exist between national markets like consumer
tastes, preferences, legal regulations, cultural systems. These differences require that marketing
strategies in order to match the conditions in a country.
Example: Wal-mart still needs to vary their products from country depending on local
tastes and preferences. McDonalds when entered into Indian market has to bring the changes in
their menu and product preparation as per the Indian people requirements.
Globalisation of production: It refers to the sourcing of goods and services from locations
around the world to take advantage of national differences in the cost and quality of factors of
production. The idea is to compete more effectively offering a product with good quality and
low cost.
Example: Nike is considerate one of the leading marketers of athletic shoes and apparel
on the world. The company has some overseas factories which have achieved a super production
with low cost. Unfortunately Nike has been a target of protest and persistent accusations that its
products are made in sweatshops with poor working conditions. The company has signalled a
commitment to improving working conditions, but in spite of the fact, the attacks continue.
Notes Falling barriers to trade and investment: The falling of barriers to international trade enables
firms to view the world as their market. The lowering of barrier to trade and investments also
allows firms to base production at the optimal location for that activity. Thus, a firm might
design a product in one country, produce a component parts in two other countries, assemble
the product in another country and then export the finished product around the world. The
lowering of trade barriers has facilitated the globalisation of production. It has also attracted the
Foreign Direct Investment which is playing an increasing role in the global economy.
Example: The development of commercial jet aircraft has reduced the time needed to get
from one location to another. Now New York is closer to Tokyo than ever.
Advances in transportation
Emergence of newly industrialised countries with productive capability and low labour
costs
Technology has been the other principal driver of globalisation. Advances in information
technology, in particular, have dramatically transformed economic life. Information technologies
have given all sorts of individual economic actors: consumers, investors, businesses; valuable
new tools for identifying and pursuing economic opportunities, including faster and more
informed analyses of economic trends around the world, easy transfers of assets, and collaboration
with far-flung partners.
Multinational corporations develop global information systems for global data processing and
decision-making. The Internet provides a broad area of services to business and individual
users. Because the World Wide Web (WWW) can reach any Internet-connected computer in the
world, the Internet is closely related to global information systems. A global information system
is a data communication network that crosses national boundaries to access and process data in
order to achieve corporate goals and strategic objectives.
An online community is a virtual community that exists online and whose members enable its
existence through taking part in membership ritual. Significant socio-technical change may
have resulted from the proliferation of such Internet-based social networks.
Notes
Caselet
T
he spread of IT and its applications has been extraordinarily rapid. Just 20 years
ago, for example, the use of desktop personal computers was still limited to a fairly
small number of technologically advanced people. The overwhelming majority of
people still produced documents with typewriters, which permit no manipulation of text
and offer no storage. Ten years ago, large and bulky mobile telephones were carried only
by a small number of users in just a few Indian cities. Today, half of all Indians use a
mobile phone, and in some developing countries, mobile phones are used by more people
than the fixed line telephone network.
Source: www.globalenvision.org/library/7/970
Globalisation took a big step backwards during the First World War, the Great Depression, and
the Second World War. Integration of rich countries didn’t recover to previous levels before the
1980s.
After the Second World War, work by politicians and various governments led to the Bretton
Woods conference, an agreement by major governments to lay down the framework for
international monetary policy, commerce and finance, and the founding of several international
institutions intended to facilitate economic growth multiple rounds of trade opening simplified
and lowered trade barriers. Initially, the General Agreement on Tariffs and Trade (GATT), led to
a series of agreements to remove trade restrictions. GATT’s successor was the World Trade
Organisation (WTO), which created an institution to manage the trading system. Exports nearly
doubled from 8.5% of total gross world product in 1970 to 16.2% in 2001. The approach of using
global agreements to advance trade stumbled with the failure of the Doha round of trade-
negotiation. Many countries then shifted to bilateral or smaller multilateral agreements, such as
the 2011 South Korea–United States Free Trade Agreement.
Since the 1970s, aviation has become increasingly affordable to middle classes in developed
countries. Open skies policies and low-cost carriers have helped to bring competition to the
market.
In the 1990s, the growth of low cost communication networks, induced by several governments,
cut the cost of communicating between different countries. More work could be performed
using a computer without regard to location. Policy reforms eased out work in the field of
accounting, software development, and engineering design.
The forces:
Creation of blocs
Shift to open market economies from closed communist systems in eastern Europe
An absolute trade advantage exists when countries can produce a commodity with less costs per
unit produced than could its trading partner. By the same reasoning, it should import commodities
in which it has an absolute disadvantage. While there are possible gains from trade with absolute
advantage, comparative advantage—that is, the ability to offer goods and services at a
lower marginal and opportunity cost—extends the range of possible mutually beneficial
exchanges. In a globalised business environment, companies argue that the comparative
advantages offered by international trade have become essential to remaining competitive.
A Special Economic Zone (SEZ) is a geographical region that has economic and other laws that
are more free-market-oriented than a country’s typical or national laws. “Nationwide” laws
may be suspended inside these special zones. The category ‘SEZ’ covers many areas, including Free
Trade Zones (FTZ), Export Processing Zones (EPZ), Free Zones (FZ), Industrial parks or Industrial
Estates (IE), Free Ports, Urban Enterprise Zones and others. Usually the goal of a structure is to
increase foreign direct investment by foreign investors, typically an international business or
a multinational corporation (MNC). These are designated areas in which companies are taxed
very lightly or not at all in order to encourage economic activity. Free ports have historically
been endowed with favourable customs regulations, for example, the free port of Trieste. Very
often free ports constitute a part of free economic zones.
A FTZ is an area within which goods may be landed, handled, manufactured or reconfigured,
and re-exported without the intervention of the customs authorities. Only when the goods are
moved to consumers within the country in which the zone is located do they become subject to
the prevailing customs duties. Free trade zones are organised around major seaports, international
airports, and national frontiers—areas with many geographic advantages for trade. It is a region
where a group of countries has agreed to reduce or eliminate trade barriers.
A free trade area is a trade bloc whose member countries have signed a free-trade agreement,
which eliminates tariffs, import quotas, and preferences on most (if not all) goods and services
traded between them. If people are also free to move between the countries, in addition to free-
trade area, it would also be considered an open border. The European Union, for example, a
confederation of 27 member states, provides both a free trade area and an open border.
Qualifying Industrial Zones (QIZ) are industrial parks that house manufacturing operations in
Jordan and Egypt. They are a special free trade zones established in collaboration with
neighbouring Israel to take advantage of the free trade agreements between the United States
and Israel. Under the trade agreements with Jordan as laid down by the United States, goods
produced in QIZ-notified areas can directly access US markets without tariff or quota restrictions,
subject to certain conditions. To qualify, goods produced in these zones must contain a small
portion of Israeli input. In addition, a minimum 35% value to the goods must be added to the
finished product. The brainchild of Jordanian businessman Omar Salah, the first QIZ was
authorised by the United States Congress in 1997.
The Asia-Pacific has been described as “the most integrated trading region on the planet” because
its intra-regional trade accounts probably for as much as 50–60% of the region’s total imports
and exports. It has also extra-regional trade: consumer goods exports such as televisions, radios,
bicycles, and textiles into the United States, Europe, and Japan fuelled the economic expansion.
Notes ASEAN had six members, namely, Brunei, Indonesia, Malaysia, Philippines, Singapore and
Thailand. Vietnam joined in 1995, Laos and Myanmar in 1997 and Cambodia in 1999.
Tax havens
A tax haven is a state, country or territory where certain taxes are levied at a low rate or not at
all, which is used by businesses for tax avoidance and tax evasion. Individuals and/or corporate
entities can find it attractive to establish shell subsidiaries or move themselves to areas with
reduced or nil taxation levels. This creates a situation of tax competition among governments.
Different jurisdictions tend to be havens for different types of taxes, and for different categories
of people and/or companies. States that are sovereign or self-governing under international
law have theoretically unlimited powers to enact tax laws affecting their territories, unless
limited by previous international treaties. The central feature of a tax haven is that its laws and
other measures can be used to evade or avoid the tax laws or regulations of other jurisdictions.
1. Free trade, peace, democracy: There’s no denying the fact that human beings who trade
with one another, who allow mutual equity stakes or financial investments to be made,
have better relationships both personally and politically. This results in avoiding or at
least reducing the risk of armed conflicts. Peace in the world becomes more secure and the
developing political systems come under increasing pressure to organise themselves in a
more democratic way. It is therefore almost immaterial whether the establishment of
peace and democracy is the main objective of the liberalisation of markets, as it is pursued
by international organisations (such as IMF, WTO) or by national governments, or whether
this is “only” a desirable, more or less automatic consequence of this process. Thus the
main motive of the founders of the European Union was reconciliation after the Second
World War, since the commercial benefits of the economic and currency union were not
altogether clear before. Only later did the “Ceccini Report” try to demonstrate in terms of
opportunity cost what the consequences of not uniting would be. They thought that at
latest, when the single currency was introduced, the unification of Europe would become
irreversible, and thereby long-term peace between the countries involved would be
secured. Even the upholding of human rights and the adherence to democratic structures
can be more effectively monitored by international organisations, if there are commercial
relations between the countries concerned. If additionally, the international conglomerates
apply pressure to uphold environmental and social standards in the manufacture of the
products which they sell world-wide, then it is likely that there will be further beneficial
effects both for environmental standards and for the quality of life among certain parts of
the population.
The globalisation is also affected by the competition. There are various forms of competitive
drivers. If there is a strong competition in the industry, the greater is the possibility of the
industry to globalise.
Growth: Is there anybody who would not accept that every company in the world, and equally
its shareholders, management and staff wish to grow, to increase sales, and if possible profits, in
order to secure their long-term future? The widely accepted hypothesis is after all valid that a
company which does not achieve growth and stability, is – like a plant – condemned to death in
the long-term, or to being pushed aside by increasingly powerful competitors. The opportunities
for growth within the national territory are however often limited – although less often than is
frequently believed.
The “No. 1 Position”: Size by itself, measured in absolute numbers, is usually not a key objective
for the “multinationals”, since for such companies whether they generate sales of 30, 50 or a 100
thousand million $ is usually not material in achieving a dominant position in the world
market. Relative size is more important, i.e. the value of sales compared with those of competitors,
and in particular the objective of being the largest and strongest in the own core market, even
perhaps being “world market leader”. For example, Jürgen Schrempp, CEO of DaimlerChrysler
is clearly pursuing with all the force at his disposal the objective of achieving the “No. 1 position
in the World Car Manufacturers’ League” (Scholtys 2002).
The objective of being or aiming to be No. 1 in the market is totally logical, considering that in
the market economy, as in sport, the motto “winner takes it all” definitely applies: Once a
product, brand or a company has become market leader, and not just in its home country, but
also in foreign markets, or even worldwide, then its position is self-reinforcing, because that
Notes sends a message to consumers, that it must be the best product, since “so many consumers
throughout the world cannot be wrong”. This is because even in the economy as a whole
“everybody loves the winner”. In selecting the countries to which the business is to be expanded,
there is also the objective of being the First In, reflecting the dictum: “second place is first loser”.
Following on from the fall of the Wall, the expansion into the previously closed-off countries of
Eastern Europe has once again demonstrated that the company which enters a market first
achieves what are called “first mover advantages” and becomes a synonym for a whole range of
products, which makes it possible for long-term market leadership to be achieved.
The multiplication of superior concepts: After all the criticism which is directed against the
companies which have a world-wide business and high-profile brands (such as COCA-COLA,
McDONALD’S, GAP, STARBUCKS etc.) and which are present almost everywhere, it is usually
overlooked that such companies make use of superior marketing concepts, which were initially
exclusively employed over many years in their home markets, and then adapted and continuously
developed for use in foreign countries. The consequence is: Consumers simply prefer to buy the
products of such manufacturers rather than those of other mostly local producers, either because
the products of the former are better in quality, or cheaper, or more innovative, or are just in fact
“more trendy”, or quite simply: because they come from the West (mostly from the USA). It is
therefore almost impossible to be successful with some undifferentiated and possibly
qualitatively inferior product against the competition which exists in virtually all business
areas in all countries of the world. Additionally, experience has shown that it is more difficult to
operate and succeed in foreign markets than in familiar home markets. If companies wish to be
successful throughout the world, they and their products must be “top fit”. The characteristic of
being superior cannot though apply to all parameters within a company’s range of products and
services. Nobody can be “champion in all sports” simultaneously. The “secret formula” for
internationally successful companies is on the contrary to focus on a small number of key
competencies, which may include:
Unbeatable low prices and low-cost production processes, such as with IKEA or HENNES
& MAURITZ
Superior and really extensive advertising or promotion activities, such as with COCA-
COLA or WRIGLEY’S
Innovative technology (as from MICROSOFT or SONY) which can be applied everywhere
in the world
This means that it (in other words, the analysts, the shareholders, the media etc.) has to be Notes
convinced of the benefits of the global expansion strategy concerned, and that it regards the
associated risks as less than the associated benefits which should flow from the investment. If
however at some point in time the risks involved in international expansion, perhaps as a result
of political strife or war, grow significantly, then it can be this same Wall Street which slams the
door on the further globalisation of companies quoted on the stock market. The continuous
increase of “shareholder value” (that means the increase of the share price plus paid out dividends)
together with limited risks therefore form for such companies an essential “conditio sine qua
non”.
Another way of generating the means required to provide or to limit the resources needed for
world-wide expansion is the use of franchise- and licence models, as is done for instance by
McDonald’s or COCA-COLA: In such cases, the necessary “hardware”, i.e. the physical investments
(sales outlets, central warehouses, plants etc.) are usually financed by the franchisee or licensee,
while the provider of the brand or the concept only supplies the “software”, i.e. the formulas,
the advertising concepts, the production know-how etc. where the capital requirements are
usually modest.
The usage of international media: A further motive for international companies to build
distribution as quickly and widely as they can across the whole globe is the possibility only
open to such companies of advertising in the relatively inexpensive (in terms of persons contacted)
international media (such as CNN or MTV) or to make use of those international sports events
such as world championships, which are transmitted globally on TV. When at the final of the
Football World Cup in Seoul in 2002, over a thousand million people were sitting in front of
their TV screens, these current or potential customers could easily and cheaply be introduced to
or at least reminded of international brand names through perimeter boards. And in fact, the list
of manufacturers of branded products which used this opportunity read like a “Who’s Who” of
global companies. This type of advertising is denied to brands which are only available in
single countries or continents because of the associated high proportion of wasted contacts.
All the above factors drive the wave of globalisation among the corporates to have an integrated
economy.
Caselet Explaining How a Domestic Company Enters
into Global Market
V
ernon’s (1966) product life-cycle provides some insight as to how a domestic firm
is usually drawn into a global market. Consider how a small food company in
Malaysia went through the cycle:
Stage 1: ARK Food Services, Ltd. was founded in 1984. Its business was to provide frozen
vegetables, such as potatoes, peas, cabbage, carrots, etc., in plastic bags which could be
cooked within minutes after taking them out of the refrigerator. The owner’s thinking
was that, since a large number of housewives would be entering the job market, they
would prefer this type of product to save time. This local focus worked for a while, and
then.
Stage 2: The Company began expanding into other regions of the country. As the volumes
grew, it became apparent that the company had to set up facilities in at least two other
regions. The firm started thinking about further expansion.
Contd...
Notes Stage 3: An American company in the same line of business approached for a joint venture
arrangement with an array of new, but related products, all of which could be merchandised
through the same distribution channels. The offer was too good to be true.
Stage 4: The Company expanded its operations into several Pacific Rim nations while
consistently maintaining an above average rate of return.
Source: Rao, P.L. (2008). International Human Resource Management. First Edition. Excel Books. New
Delhi.
Notes A similar perspective has provided by Chandler (1962), who suggested the following
progression of firm’s growth:
2. Geographic expansion: Allows the firm to operate in distinct markets with existing
products.
Self Assessment
7. Convergence of lifestyles and tastes of people world wide acts as ………… forces for
globalisation.
8. Globalisation of markets refers to the ………… of national markets into one huge global
marketplace.
10. A ……………… is a state, country or territory where certain taxes are levied at a low rate
or not at all.
The variables that moderate differences between HRM and GHRM are identified as:
There is a wide difference between HRM and global HRM. The international dimensions may Notes
bring with it a host of issues, which the domestic HR function would not normally get involved
in. The distinction between global HRM and HRM are:
1. Being responsible for a greater number of functions and activities, such as the selection,
training and management of international assignees.
2. Having to expand one’s area of expertise to include a much broader knowledge of foreign
country employment laws and global organisation designs.
3. Having to get much more closely involved with employees’ lives as the firm moves
employees to foreign assignments. For example, collecting information and furnishing to
visa authorities about Aids or marital status of employees.
4. Being involved with a greatly expanded and constantly changing mix of employees (from
the host country and foreign locales), adding considerable diversity and complexity to the
HR tasks.
5. Having to cope with more external influences; for example, having to consider the impact
of foreign cultures and laws.
6. Having to face greater exposure to problems and liabilities (for example, making mistakes
in expatriate assignments can cost as much as US$4 million per assignee). The accumulated
direct and indirect costs can be huge.
9. More emphasis on activities like international relocation and orientation, both pre-
departure and post-departure cultural training. Knowledge of international taxation, rate
of inflation and cost of living, including currency fluctuation.
10. Diversity management, like managing people from different cultural and political
backgrounds and gender differences.
11. More contacts with government officials for obtaining visas, tax certificates, fixing of
meetings and so on.
12. More coordination and travel to assess performance of expatriates and solve problems.
(a) More risk management as threats from terrorists, kidnappers and protecting
intellectual property rights of firms.
(b) More public relations work to enhance the multinationals image and deal with
human rights and other NGOs and interest groups operating in different countries.
Task Make a list of at least ten companies operating in India. Now find out which of them
are belonging to India and which are from other countries.
Transfer refers to the shifting of employees form one job to another within the same organization
where salary, responsibilities and category of the new job and the previous job are almost same.
Notes Transfer of an employee can be done in other department of the same plant or office or to the
same department of plant or office located in other region/city.
Transfer can be done on the request of employee due to personal reason like family
problem or health problem.
Due to HR policy which states that one employee can work in department or place for
specific time period.
Transfers are common in the organizations where the work load varies timely.
If an employee is not able to do the work or job assigned effectively he can be transferred
to the other job where he can use his skills properly according to his interest and abilities.
Employees can be transferred to the position or department with the higher priority
workload.
Production Transfer: When the transfers are being made for filling the position in such
departments having lack of staff, from the departments having surplus manpower it is
called production transfer. It prevents the layoffs form the organization. Also it is good to
adjust existing staff rather than to hire the new one.
Versatility Transfer: Such transfers are done to increase the versatility in the employees so
that he can work different kind of jobs. This is done by transferring employee to different
jobs closely related in same department or process line.. This is used as a training device.
It helps employee to develop him and he is equipped for the high responsibility jobs as he
is having knowledge of the whole process.
Shift Transfer: In many multi-shifts jobs such as Call centres employees are transferred
from one shift to another due to their personal reasons like health problem or evening
college for higher studies or any family problems.
Lateral Transfer: An employee is transferred to another area or department with the same
title, or the same salary range, if the title is different. No immediate salary action is to be
taken. The base salary of the transferred employee will be reviewed during the normal
common review process.
Voluntary Transfer: When an employee voluntarily elects to apply for a position and is
selected for the job which has a lower salary range than their current position. When an
employee actively volunteers to accept an open position in a lower salary range because
of a position elimination or Departmental reorganization. The employee's base salary
should be established within 10% of the new job's salary range, not to exceed the salary
range maximum of the new position.
12. The different cultural environment is also a variable that moderates differences between
HRM and GHRM.
13. Knowledge of international taxation, rate of inflation and cost of living, including currency
fluctuation, are to be maintained in GHRM.
15. In GHRM, more contacts with government officials for obtaining visas, tax certificates,
fixing of meetings are maintained.
Case Study Global Thrust of Aditya Birla Group
A
decade has passed since Kumar Mangalam Birla took over in 1996 the reigns of
the Aditya Birla group, when he was just 28 years old. Over the last ten years, not
only has he emerged a leader in his own right, quietly but surely, he has reinvented
the group with a definitive global thrust. Recognition of this was evident recently even as
he narrowly missed the World Entrepreneur of the Year Award of Ernst & Young in a hot
contest at Monte Carlo in 2006. Consider the growing global contours of the group today.
It is:
The transition in the last ten years from a domestically-focused commodities giant to a
global conglomerate is also reflected in the numbers. The group turnovers grew from $1.8
billion to about $12 billion. It recorded a healthy growth rate of 15 per cent on an average
in the last ten years, even as it recorded a high 22 per cent each year, in the last four years.
This increasing growth momentum came from each of its business segments including
metals, cement, mining and the new economy like telecom, apparel and financial services.
The group has manufacturing facilities in 10 countries. Its early presence was largely in
South East Asian countries. Today, it has significant investments in Egypt, Canada, Australia,
China and Laos. In fact, about 30 per cent of its overall turnover comes from overseas
operations, and more than 12,000 of the group’s 72,000 employees come from 20
nationalities. While India will remain important, China is also on Kumar Mangalam’s
radar.
Contd...
Notes The global journey has not been very easy. As the company moves from being just an
India-focused group, one of the challenges it constantly faces is to establish its credibility
as a global multinational. Consider: A new acquisition in Canada in 2005. Its pulp and
fibre business inked an agreement with the province of New Brunswick in Canada,
establishing a new company, AV Nackawic Pulp Plant. As part of the acquisition process,
the team needed to make presentations to groups of the local community of the mill
township of Nackawic, whose livelihood depended, to a large extent, on restarting the
pulp plant. There were searching questions from local unions, the provincial government
and employees, but the team was able to effectively allay their concerns. Starting from a
position of scepticism, by the end of the process, the employees of Nackawic were convinced
that they would rather work for an Indian multinational with credibility, than for a local
company that presided over its shutdown last year. Finally, the Indian acquisition team
was taken to the provincial Parliament, where it received a standing ovation.
Indeed, this acquisition was important for the Aditya Birla group. The strategy was to use
this as a captive source of high quality pulp for its fibre units in India, Thailand and
Indonesia. With a capacity of 180,000 tonnes per annum, this acquisition is expected to
enhance its global competitiveness in the fibre business.
For the future, the group wants to be in the Fortune 500 list by 2010. It needs to grow at an
average 15 per cent in dollar terms over the next seven years. It has set itself tall global
plans. In rayon fibre, it wants to be the number one global player with a market share in
excess of 30 per cent. In non-ferrous metals, it plans to be the largest integrated aluminium
player in Asia with significant presence in downstream customer-interactive business. In
cement, it targets to remain as one of the largest players in India and look selectively at
other attractive markets to diversify its global reach. And in carbon black, its target is to
be one of the top commanding presence in all significant world markets.
Questions
1. How did Aditya Birla Company move from India-focused group to global MNC?
2. What factors can contribute Aditya Birla Company to enter into Fortune 500 group?
1.5 Summary
HRM refers to those activities undertaken by an organisation to utilise its human resources
effectively.
HRM refers to those activities undertaken by an organisation to utilise its human resources
effectively.
Key drivers of globalisation are market drivers, costs drivers, technology drivers,
government drivers and competitive drivers.
1.6 Keywords
Ethnocentric: Approach in which key positions at the domestic and foreign operations are held
by management personnel of headquarters.
Free Trade Zones (FTZ): A FTZ is an area within which goods may be landed, handled,
manufactured or reconfigured, and re-exported without the intervention of the customs
authorities.
Online Community: It is a virtual community that exists online and whose members enable its
existence through taking part in membership ritual.
Parent Country Nationals (PCNs): PCNs are managers who are citizens of the country where
the MNC is headquartered.
Third Country Nationals (TCNs): TCNs are managers who are citizens of countries other than
the one in which the MNC is headquartered or the one in which it is assigned to work by the
MNC.
7. Elucidate the statement ‘Technology has been the other principal driver of globalisation’.
1. Human 2. Global
3. Coordination 4. Within
5. Ethnocentric 6. Four
7. Market 8. Merging
15. True
http://www.marketing.bwl.uni-muenchen.de/4_lehre/veranstaltungen_auto/
bachelor_wise/intl_marketing/pdfintmkt/lange_keydrivers2004.pdf
http://libguides.nl.sg/content.php?pid=116806&sid=1007638
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
2.5 Summary
2.6 Keywords
Objectives
Introduction
The interaction of learning within a society produces a body of socially transmitted behaviour
which is perpetrated beyond the individual life-span. The term ‘culture’ is applied to such
systems of acquired and transmitted behaviour. Organisational culture is different from world
cultures in terms of the languages, beliefs, and foods, which are the source of our identity. This
environment not only influences inhabitants and customers, but also the people who work
there. So, the organisational culture has to be tuned along with the readjustments that are
needed to be made for enhancing the human resource management function in international
context.
Culture is defined as that complex whole which includes knowledge, belief, art, morals, law,
custom, and other capabilities acquired by man as a member of society. It is the collective
Notes programming of the mind which distinguishes the members of one human group from another.
So, culture includes systems of values and values are among the building blocks of culture.
Important cultural elements are values, norms, attitudes, folkways and customs. Values form
the bedrock of a culture. They provide the context within which a society’s norms are established
and justified. They may include a society’s attitude towards such concepts as individual freedom,
democracy, truth, justice, honesty, loyalty, social obligations, collective responsibility, marriage,
sex and so on.
1. Norms are further subdivided into two major categories: Folkways and Mores. While
folkways define the way people are expected to behave. People who violate folkways are
thought of as eccentric or ill-mannered.
2. Mores are norms that are seen as central to the functioning of a society and to its social life.
Mores include such factors as indictments against theft, adultery, etc. For example eating
cow’s meat is viewed critically by Hindu Society. While drinking is common in the US, the
same is prohibited in Saudi Arabia and is a punishable offence.
3. Cultural traits are unique aspects of individual cultures. A cultural trait is a custom such as
men opening the door for women, a gesture such as namaste.
4. Enculturation is the process of acquiring cultural traits. One acquires cultural traits naturally
within one’s culture.
5. Diffusion is the process through which cultures change. Each society borrows cultural
traits from others, particularly if a newly learned trait seems better than a traditional one.
Some sectors of society resist such changes. This is known as cultural lag.
6. If contacts between societies are prolonged, acculturation may occur. Traits that have been
borrowed over the short-term become permanently adopted. New customs, devices,
gestures and ideas irrevocably change both interacting cultures.
7. Assimilation occurs when immigrants or other newcomers adopt the culture of the society
in which they have settled.
8. When people leave their own culture to enter another, they must grapple with unfamiliar
and unpredictable events, relationships and objects. Some of these may cause a phenomenon
called culture shock.
Organisational culture is defined as the specific collection of values and norms that are shared
by people and groups in an organisation and that control the way they interact with each other
and with stakeholders outside the organisation. Today due the globalisation and liberalisation
of the economy, organisations are evolving into global corporates and thus, they have to develop
the global strategies and management approach in order to succeed in the foreign markets.
Did u know? Corporate culture is the total sum of the values, customs, traditions and
meanings that make a company unique. Corporate culture is often called “the character of
an organisation” since it embodies the vision of the company’s founders. The values of a
corporate culture influence the ethical standards within a corporation, as well as managerial
behaviour. Organisational culture is not the same as corporate culture. It is wider and
deeper concepts.
Organisation culture is shaped not only by technologies and markets, but also by the cultural
preferences of leader and employees. Some international companies have European, Asian,
American and Middle-Eastern subsidiaries, which would be unrecognisable as the same company
except for the logo and reporting procedures.
National culture influences the extent to which leadership; teams and employee activities are Notes
socially valued and supported. The impact of national culture on organisation cultures by
distinguishing corporate culture along two axes: equality, hierarchy and orientation to the
person – the task, which gives broadly four types of cultures depending on how they think and
learn, how they change and how they motivate, reward and resolve conflicts. The four types can
be described as follows: (1) the family; (2) the Eiffel Tower; (3) the guided missile; and (4) the
incubator. Each of these types of corporate culture is the ‘ideal’ type. In practice, the types are
mixed or overlaid with on culture dominating.
National cultures are constantly evolving. Factors that influence the evolving pattern are
prevailing political and economic systems, the social structure of society, dominant religion,
language, aesthetics and education.
1. Social Structure: A society’s social structure refers to its basic social organisation. Social
structure (for study of cultural differences) consists of:
(a) The degree to which the basic unit of social organisation is the individual, as opposed
to the group. An individual is the basic unit in western societies and therefore
individual achievement gets primacy. In most other societies the group is the basic
unit of social structure.
2. Language: This is an essential element which distinguishes one culture from another.
Example: In countries such as Canada and Switzerland, two or more languages are
spoken. In China, India and Nigeria with a diversity of populations, several languages are
spoken. English is the official language of many countries, such as Australia and Singapore, but
the two countries are culturally diverse. English tends to be the business language, while French
is seen as the language of diplomacy.
In business communication, the translation from one language to another can result in
inaccuracies. The same language may have different terms for the same word.
Example: In American English, petrol (British English) is called gasoline and biscuits as
cookies. An Indian generally would not understand the word ‘downtown’ frequently used by
Americans for city centre.
In the UK, a person with a large office is important in the hierarchy. But in Japan, many
high executives share offices. Much business communication also depends on non-verbal
messages. Body language differs from culture to culture.
Example: Nodding of the head one way may mean ‘yes’ in one culture and ‘no’ in
another.
3. Education: Learning and sharing cultural values happens through the education system.
4. Aesthetics: The aesthetics of a culture refers to designs, forms, colours, shapes, sounds –
things conveying the concept of beauty and good taste. These are reflected in the music,
art, and architecture of a society. The aesthetics of a culture can affect a firm’s marketing
strategy, diplomacy and management of human resources.
Factors that have encouraged the convergence of certain aspects of culture among nations are:
1. Improvements in transport and communications and a huge increase in the number of
people visiting foreign countries.
2. Globalisation of media resulting in the same newspaper and magazine article appearing
in all nations.
4. The operation of multinationals across the world, supplying standardised products and
frequently using undifferentiated marketing strategies.
5. A seemingly worldwide increase in consumers’ willingness to accept fresh ideas and try
new products.
Global organisations need to know about cultural differences among nations in order to be able
to:
2. Conduct negotiations and understand the nuances of the beginning postures of the other
parties into a negotiation,
3. Predict trends in social behaviour likely to affect the firm’s foreign operations,
5. Predict how cultural differences will affect consumer reactions to advertisements and
other promotions,
Caselet Success of the Electronic Giant-Samsung in
Different Countries
E
lectronics major Samsung was successful in its international operations by
integrating itself with the cultural sensitivity. Samsung, the South Korean
conglomerate, runs business right across Europe, from Hungary where TVs are
Contd...
produced, to Portugal where microchips are made to Germany where cameras are produced. Notes
There are operations in the UK and in Slovakia.
Samsung has developed a synthesis of management styles, taking the best from the
European and Korean approaches. For example, in Germany the emphasis is given to
individual workers as the company recognises that individual ability is high. In South
Korea, on the other hand, emphasis is placed on teamwork. A further difference appears
when looking at the structural design adopted by the company. A bureaucratic approach
is followed in its home country, something that would not find favour in Europe.
Hence in UK and other European countries, the company’s structure is flat and authority
devolved. Creating an indigenous management style is also part of the company’s strategy
to make its European operations self-sufficient, based on the need to have fast response
time to market changes.
Source: P.L. Rao, International Human Resource Management, First Edition, Excel Books, New Delhi,
2008.
Self Assessment
2. Learning and sharing cultural values happens through the ………… system.
3. The ………… of a culture refers to designs, forms, colors, shapes, sounds; things conveying
the concept of beauty and good taste.
In order to analyse the influence of different national cultures and finding a common dimension
of culture across the countries, G. Hofstede gathered the data from the surveys and found that:
2. Underlying values persist when a multinational company tries to impose the same norms
on all its foreign interests;
1. Power Distance: It is ‘the extent to which less powerful members of organisations accept
that power is distributed unequally.’ It is the distance between individuals at different
levels of hierarchy. Countries in which people blindly obey the orders of their superiors
have high power distance.
Example: Mexico, South Korea and India. In such societies, lower-level employees tend
to follow orders as a matter of procedure. Even at higher levels, strict obedience is the practice.
Notes Power distance is greatest in Malaysia and least in Austria and Israel. The proportion of
supervisory personnel is less and the workforce will often consist of highly qualified
people in high power distance countries. The salary gap between levels will be higher.
Power will be reflected through status symbols. Status will be highly valued and have
higher motivational appeal. Management is more by control than by participation.
Example: It includes Germany, Spain and Japan. Members in these countries are more
anxiety-prone and have high job stress. Employees place high premium on job security, career
planning, and health insurance and retirement benefits.
Countries with low uncertainty culture are more entrepreneurial, innovative and exhibit
less emotional resistance to change.
Example: Swedes suppress emotions and see shyness as a positive trait and talkativeness
as a negative one. In business, they opt for the rational than the emotional course. Swedes are
avid appliers of new technology and are ruthless in scrapping what is old inefficient.
Trade unions, which find a place on the board, will accept job cuts if they find rational
arguments in favour. Organisations encourage personnel to use their own initiative and
to assume responsibility for their actions. Sweden, the US and UK are examples of countries
with low uncertainty avoidance.
3. Individualism: Individualism is the tendency of people to look after themselves and their
immediate families only. These cultural differences are measured on a bipolar continuum
with individualism on one end and collectivism on other. Collectivism is the tendency of
the people to belong to groups and to look after each other in exchange for loyalty.
Wealthy countries have higher individualism scores, and poorer countries have higher
collectivism scores. Countries like the USA, Canada, Denmark, and Sweden have high
individualism and higher gross product. Japan is an exception. Conversely, countries like
Pakistan, or those in Latin America have low individualism (high collectivism) and low
gross national product.
Countries like Norway, with a low masculinity index, tend to place great importance on
cooperation, friendly atmosphere, and employment security. The workplace has a cordial
atmosphere and managers give more credit to employees and freedom to act.
Cultures with a high masculinity index like Germany and Spain favour large scale
enterprises. Economic growth is more important than conservation of environment.
Cultures with high femininity tend to favour small-scale enterprises and place great
importance on conservation of environment.
These cultural dimensions can be used for explaining the differences between various countries Notes
and how countries can be described in terms of pairs of dimensions.
Americans have very high individualism and relatively low power distance. They prefer to do
things for themselves and are not upset when others have more power than they do. Americans
are taught that every one is equal, so individuals having important titles or jobs do not overly
impress them. Australians, Canadians, British, New Zealanders have the same basic values and
therefore can be clubbed together in one cluster.
The integration of these cultural factors into a two-dimensional plot – the uncertainty avoidance
index against power distance – explains culture’s effect on behaviour. A number of dimensions
are at work and sometimes they do not all move in the anticipated direction. Also certain other
factors affecting the organisational culture are:
3. Locus of control: People tend to believe that what happens to them in life is their own
doing (internal locus of control), or they have no or little control over what happens to
them (external locus of control), the causes of which are external to them.
Self Assessment
9. People with external locus of control tend to believe that what happens to them in life is
their own doing.
10. The workplace has a cordial atmosphere and managers give more credit and freedom to
employees to act in countries with a low masculinity index.
Cultural differences affect the organisational work behaviour within the countries and cultures.
The knowledge of the culture helps in understanding the beliefs, attitude and orientation of the
employees and workers from the countries internationally. Pattern of behaviour and thinking
Notes is different in different countries due to different cultures. This is a major issue which organisation
faces in cross-border deals.
In countries where the orientation to human nature is ‘Mixed’, there is more use of
middleman and business contracts are made more specific. In such countries legal
profession is a flourishing trade.
Example: America and India are nations with mixed orientation while Saudi Arabia and
Japan are countries where orientation towards human nature is good. Americans are optimistic
about other people’s motivations and capacities.
2. The second orientation is about relationship to nature, which relates to locus of control –
whether it is internal or external.
Example: Americans with an orientation for being ‘dominant’ believe that man can
control nature and spend huge amounts on space research, weather control, and biotech, etc. In
such dominant countries, conflict is not disapproved of and differences in views are encouraged.
The eastern countries, with an orientation towards harmony, believe that there should be
peace between man and nature. There is also a desire to avoid conflicts. Countries in the
Middle East and India, with an orientation for subjugation, believe that destiny and God
control everything. People believe in astrology and assign all success and failure to God.
Example: Countries like Thailand, China and Indonesia have more follower-ship than
leadership.
4. The fourth orientation is the modality of human activity. When it is towards doing as in
the case of Americans, Germans or the English, self-identification is achieved through
action and performance. Where the orientation is towards ‘being’, people are more
philosophical and spend time in abstract thinking.
Notes
Example: In countries of the Middle East, and in India and China, status in life is derived
from birth, age, sex, family, and social connections more than through one’s achievement.
Where the orientation is towards ‘containing’ (Japan, Thailand), focus is on self-control. Striving
is for balance between feelings and doing.
5. The fifth orientation is the temporal focus of human activity. When it is ‘future’ oriented
(e.g. US), the belief is that a better future can be planned and controlled. On the other hand,
if the orientation is towards the ‘past’, like in India, Pakistan, and the Middle East, people
base their decisions on lesson learned from the past.
6. Concept of space in the minds of people: How much people value privacy is the other
orientation. If people think space is ‘public’ then a notice that a meeting is in progress is
interrupted as a request to stay out. In countries like China, space is more ‘public’ when
doors are closed. People suspect something fishy. In the western countries, space is more
‘private’. People like their chambers and always knock before entering others’ rooms.
So, these orientation patterns play a great role in determining and comparing the cultures
across nations and help the organisation in designing their strategies accordingly.
Self Assessment
11. The knowledge of the culture helps in understanding the beliefs, ………. and orientation
of the employees and workers from the countries internationally.
12. In the western countries, people like their own chambers and always ………. before entering
others’ rooms.
Motivation of the employees is most important task which the managers and the organisations
have to perform. Motivated employee results in the increased productivity and creates personal
effectiveness at the workplace. For motivating the employees internationally, MNCs must be
aware about the cultural norms and regulations. There are basically two motivation theories
that are used to analyse the behaviour of the individual. They are: individual dimensions focusing
on the individual aspect, while other is team dimension which focuses on the team behaviour
and motivation of the employees.
Maslow has identified the five basic needs of the human beings which form a hierarchy. They
are physiological, safety, social, esteem and self-actualisation needs. Unless the lower order
needs are met, the higher order needs cannot be satisfies. In countries like Greece and Japan,
need motives of the employees are strong than the self-actualisation needs. In these countries,
employees consider the lifetime employment and job-security more important than having a
challenging job. In countries like Pakistan, people tend to stress more on the social needs. But for
an American, self-actualisation needs are more important than social needs.
Hertzberg’s two-factor motivational theory states that hygiene factors which are associated
with the environment surrounding the job only de-motivate the employees. The motivators
associated with the job itself have the power to motivate the people. But culture again is an
influencing factor that motivates and demotivates the employees’ behaviour. The highly
individualistic, productive-oriented American culture focus is on the job enrichment while in
Sweden and Norway, quality of the working life is given more emphasis which acts as a
motivating factor for the employees.
Notes In many countries, the most important goal concerned is the achievement, environment conditions
and employment conditions like pay and work hours, but there are certain cultural differences
across different countries which the organisation must consider before designing the motivational
policies:
1. English speaking countries ranked higher on individual achievement and lower on the
desire for security.
3. Germany ranked highest on security and fringe benefits and highest on “getting ahead.”
4. Japan ranked second highest on challenge and lowest on autonomy with a strong emphasis
on good working conditions and a friendly working environment.
The above motivational theories are used in designing the jobs, developing the work centrality
and rewards policy by the MNCs internationally. In Japan, quality of work life is more emphasised
with structured task, low individualism, and strong emphasis on the security. Individual-risk
taking is not encouraged and they are used to take orders from their superiors. Emphasis is laid
out on money and material symbols of success. They heavily depend on money as a motivator
to motivate them and get the work done.
Work centrality focuses on the significance which individual places on the work in comparison
to other areas of personal interest such as family, religion, etc. it varies from culture to culture.
Job satisfaction is most important factor motivating the employees across cultures. Americans
are more satisfied with the job challenges, team work opportunities and ability to make a
significant contribution at workplace.
Reward system also motivates the individual. But to standardise the reward policy of the MNCs
is the biggest challenge especially when the firm functions internationally. Americans prefer to
work for organisations that provide merit-based rewards for the individuals, while Japan and
Korean workers prefer to group performance for rewards.
Global firms pay more attention to the workplace relationships which create motivating climate.
The employees are motivated by the structures they work in. Management are using the teams
to enrich and motivate the productive work. Japanese work on this concept and developed a
small team of volunteers from the same work area who met on a regular basis in order to
identify, analyse and resolve production problems. It increases the efficiency. Team performance
and team bonus is more important for them than the individual performance as in case of
Americans.
So, when the MNCs transcends the national borders, they have to take care of the cultural factors
in motivating the employees by designing the compensation and reward policies based on the
cultural aspects of the countries.
Communication is the exchange of meaning: it is my attempt to let you know what I mean.
Communication includes any behaviour that another human being perceives and interprets.
Communication includes sending both verbal messages (words) and nonverbal messages (tone
of voice, facial expression, behaviour, and physical setting). It includes consciously sent messages
as well as messages that the sender is totally unaware of sending.
Cross-cultural communication occurs when a person from one culture sends a message to a
person from another culture. Cross-cultural miscommunication occurs when the person from
the second culture does not receive the sender’s intended message. The greater the difference
between the sender’s and the receiver’s culture, the greater the chance for cross-cultural mis- Notes
communication.
Moving from one country to another, whether for business or pleasure, almost invariably
causes culture shock and the severity of the shock is directly proportional to the cultural distance
between two countries. The process of intercultural communication is complex as it involves the
communication between individuals from the different cultures. The societies are divided on
the basis of the culture internationally. High-context and low-context cultures have to be taken
in account by the organisation to design their policies internationally.
Members of high-context culture, depend heavily on the external environment, situation and
non-verbal behaviour in creating and interpreting communication. Members of this culture
group learn to interpret the covert clues when they communicate – so much meaning is conveyed
indirectly. They believe in long-term relationships.
In low-context cultures like the US, Sweden, and Britain, the environment is less important, and
non-verbal behaviour is often ignored. Therefore, communication has to be explicit and clear.
People pay more attention to words than to gestures. People publish their experiences, which
are widely read and commented upon. In the East, experiences are not published but passed on
to close individuals. Relationships between individuals are of relatively short duration, and
deep personal bonds with others are not greatly valued.
Example: High-context cultures are Arabia, Chinese, and Japanese, where indirect style
of communication and ability to understand the same is highly valued. U.S., Sweden and Britain
are low-context culture countries where non-verbal behaviour is ignored.
The model is useful in understanding how members of different cultures develop business
relationships, negotiate with insiders and outsiders and implement contracts.
Based on the cultures, the countries are also divided which is most relevant to the business
communication and negotiations. The four dimensions are:
1. Dealers Focus vs. Relationship Focus: Deal-focused (DF) cultures are task oriented, while
relationship-focused (RF) cultures are more people oriented. Conflicts arise when DF
managers are marketers communicate or negotiate with RF business persons. RF managers
find their DF counterparts pushy, aggressive and offensively blunt. On the other hand, DF
managers often consider their RF counterparts dilatory, vague and inscrutable.
Notes
Example: In DF cultures found in northern Europe, North America, Australia and New
Zealand; people are relatively open to doing business with strangers. This means, in DF countries
one can straight away talk business and get down to facts. The US is highly DF because Americans
are raised in a mobile immigrant society.
In RF countries, people get things done through relatives, friends, business contacts and
connections. The Chinese call this ‘guanxi,’ means ‘pull’ or ‘clout’. This is the only way to
break bureaucratic delays. One has to have patience dealing with RF companies.
Example: Volkswagen took nine years to negotiate with the government of China on
the opening of an automobile factory. It took twelve years for McDonald to work out an agreement
with the Soviet government to open the first Golden Arches restaurant in Russia.
DF cultures value direct, frank, straightforward language while their counterparts often
favour an indirect, subtle, roundabout style. They give priority to maintaining harmony
and a void saying anything that may cause embarrassment or loss of face to the other
party.
Example: Japanese never say the word ‘no’ but use other means to indicate the same.
2. Formal vs. Informal: Formal cultures tend to be organised in step hierarchies, which
reflect major differences in status and power. Informal cultures value more egalitarian
organisations with smaller differences in status and power. These contrasting values cause
conflict at the conference table. Formal way of addressing people and maintaining proper
protocol are ways of showing respect to people.
An American consultant with a decade of business experience in South Asia arranged for
his Chicago consultant to meet with the minister of textiles in Bangladesh. The company
had asked for a favourable decision on a complex issue involving garment quota allocations,
but was not optimistic about the outcome; a competitor who had made a similar request
had seen his application summarily rejected by mid-level bureaucrats in the ministry.
It was sweltering day in Dhaka and the minister’s air-conditioner too was not switched on.
This caused the visitor considerable discomfort because, at the consultant’s insistence he
was wearing dark suit with a tie. He sat steaming and sweating while the minister chatted
away amiably, cool and comfortable in his white muslin. After an hour and a half of
aimless conversation, the minister stood up and with a broad smile informed the petitioner
that he had decided to grant his request. The consultant learnt from his contacts in the
government that the minister had deliberately not turned on the AC for the meeting. ‘His
excellence may have been testing,’ said the contact.
People from egalitarian societies are often unaware of the importance of status distinctions
in hierarchical cultures. They often do not know how to show respect to high-ranking
persons from formal cultures that are easily offended by perceived slights. The lesson
here is that, when dealing with government officials in formal cultures, it is important to
show respect and deference.
3. Rigid Time vs. Fluid Time: In rigid-time societies, punctuality is critical, schedules are set Notes
in concrete, agendas fixed and business meetings are rarely interrupted. These societies
are monochronic for their clock-obsessed, schedule-worshipping cultures.
While in polychronic cultures, where people place less emphasis on punctuality and are
not observed with deadlines. Polychronic cultures do not value scheduling of business
meetings. In fact several meetings-within-meetings may be taking place simultaneously.
Orientation to time varies not only among different countries but often within a given
country as well.
4. Expressive vs. Reserved Cultures: There are three types of interpersonal communications:
(a) Verbal communication has to do with words and the meaning of words.
(b) Para-verbal language refers to how loudly we speak those words, the meaning of
silence and the significance of conversational overlap.
Expressive people tend to be uncomfortable with more than a second or two of silence
during a conversation. People from reserved cultures feel at ease with much longer silences.
Example: Japanese negotiators sit without speaking for what seems like eternity to
voluble Mexicans, Greeks, or Americans.
Example: Spanish negotiators interrupt Swedes about five times as often as Swedes
interrupt Spaniards. This will cause problems in negotiations unless parties are aware of this
cultural trait. Japanese not only take turns to avoid overlap, but also often pause a few seconds
before speaking.
Climate and culture both play a role in sartorial behaviour. In the tropics and in desert
countries, businessmen often wear open-necked shirts and cotton trousers. But even in
these countries it is advisable to wear a suit or a blazer for the first meeting. For meetings
with government officials this formality takes on greater importance. In most other parts
of the world, men should wear a dark suit, conservative tie, white shirt and dark socks.
Example: Visit to Latin Europe and Latin America requires special attention to the style
and quality of both men’s and women’s clothes and accessories. In the Middle East, business
contacts often judge one by the quality and price of his briefcase, watch, and jewellery. One
should wear and carry the best one has. Throughout Asia it is a good idea to wear slip-on shoes
Notes because custom requires you to remove your footwear when entering temples, people’s homes
and some offices as well.
Example: In Japan and Korea, people formally present their cards at the beginning of
every first meeting, to the most important member of the team first and then to other members
in the descending order of importance. No further exchange with these persons should be made
as giving the card a second time means that you have forgotten him or her, and this may be
taken as a deliberate insult. These cultures even have etiquette in giving and receiving cards.
The card should be presented with the other person’s language face-up, in case of bilingual
cards. After receiving the card one should read it and place it before oneself during the meeting.
So, cross culture differences should be accounted by the organisations in their culture if
they wanted to succeed in the global arena. Ignoring the cultural differences in the business
communication can prove fatal for the organisations. Before going for any project or
meeting in international assignment, it is imperative for the managers to have a cross-
cultural training so that they are aware about the cultural differences and the message
which their body language will convey to the other person.
Task Consider that your company is planning to go for a project discussion in Japan.
Bring out the communication pattern you will follow while going for the discussions to
make that project a success.
Self Assessment
13. Motivated employee results in the increased productivity and creates personal effectiveness
at the workplace.
14. Maslow has identified the four basic needs of the human beings which form a hierarchy.
15. Deal-focused (DF) cultures are task oriented, while relationship-focused (RF) cultures are
more people oriented.
Case Study Ranbaxy Laboratories
A
lthough the global pharmaceuticals war is driven by large doses of R&D, the
` 1,065.70 crores Ranbaxy Laboratories’ success has been attained through a
different route. For his company, CEO Parvinder Singh, has developed capabilities
in manufacturing and marketing fanning out into seven developing markets, and growing
strengths in product engineering.
Contd...
costs at each stage without factoring in possible increases in downstream costs, the company Notes
employs the concept of total activity cost to optimise its expenses. Many of the cost benefits
also flow from benchmarking against international competitors. Cost data from the world’s
four most competitive generic drugs-manufacturers—Mylan and Ivax of the US, Teva of
Israel, and Doffar of Italy—are constantly fed to the process design, manufacturing, and
product-development teams.
While some of its domestic rivals are fixated on basic research, Ranbaxy is differentiating
itself by designing Novel Drug Delivery Systems (NDDS). The NDDS—an unconventional
way of administering a drug such as helper compounds or polymer implants—makes
differentiation easier to achieve than developing innovative new drugs would. It is also
cheaper and quicker, taking between ` 72 crore and ` 108 crore, and between three and five
years to develop, versus an average of ` 1,800 crore and between 10 and 12 years for a new
drug. Moreover, it offers an opportunity for Ranbaxy to leverage a competence it does
possess.
Ranbaxy is actually two companies rolled into one. Globally, it is determinedly focused
on generic molecules, and refuses to venture into other areas. That, naturally, gives it a
sharp business focus. At home, where its market-share of 5.60% market it is second only to
the ` 731 crore Glaxo Welcome’s 7%. It takes the conventional route of branded products,
with seven brands enjoying market shares of over 2.70%.
To make it more difficult for new competitors to enter, Ranbaxy is eschewing the highly
competitive pockets in the market. Since almost every generic player keeps blockbuster
drugs—which deliver high returns to their inventors during their patent lifetime—in its
sights, the consequent flood of generic offerings saturates the market. But by veering
away from them and focusing on complex molecules—which attract only one or two
competitors—Ranbaxy is counting on the relatively smaller size of its target market to
deter new entrants. Confirms Singh: “We aim to make products involving complex
chemistry”. Moreover, the skills required in its product lines aren’t easy to acquire.
One of Ranbaxy’s greatest strengths lies in the fact that is vertically integrated through
five stages of the value chain, which helps it manage cost and quality across the chain.
Naturally, that ensures this the benefits from efficiencies can be soaked up from every
activity in the chain. Thus, raising capacities is a natural way of maximising the gains from
vertical integration. But high capacities also need large-enough markets to sustain them,
which is why Ranbaxy operates in 26 different countries. And by raising scale and
redesigning processes, Ranbaxy has been able to cut the costs of production of some its
key bulk drugs—6APA, 7ADCA, fluoroquinolones, and cephalexin—by half.
For Ranbaxy, the strength in servicing its global customers comes not from deep
distribution or selling skills, but from developing relationships with them. Among its
major global customers, for instance, are Eli Lilly and Genpharm. What Ranbaxy promises
them is exclusive marketing rights for its products, gaining their loyalty in exchange.
Contd...
Notes Without chasing the chimera of developing new drugs, Ranbaxy uses guerrilla skills. A
classic example: it synthesised cefaclor—a complex molecule patented by the $ 7.30 billion
Eli Lilly—through an alternative route, becoming the only company in the world to
develop a process for the product without infringing on the original patent. Alarmed, Eli
Lilly had no choice but to strike a joint venture with Ranbaxy to protect its turf, which
allowed the Indian company to access the transnational’s distribution network in the US.
And Ranbaxy has now perfected the art of developing drugs by setting up teams that work
on parallel processes for producing generic drugs.
Having consciously opted out of the mainstream drugs business, Ranbaxy has developed
competitive advantages in areas where most large companies are only marginally involved.
Applied in the developed markets, it is now targeting that focus will make Ranbaxy’s
prescription even more potent.
Questions
2. What generic competitive strategies did Ranbaxy adopt to emerge as one of Asia’s
top pharmaceutical companies?
4. Does the company use leading-edge technology? How does the company develop
or acquire such technology? How strong are its research capabilities?
Source: P.L. Rao, International Human Resource Management, First Edition, Excel Books, New Delhi,
2008.
2.5 Summary
Culture plays a very important role in the success or the failure of the international
assignments.
Culture varies across different nations due to varied beliefs of the people.
There are various societies that are being formed based on the cross-cultural beliefs.
In collectivistic societies, people are born into and protected by extended families, to
which they give loyalty.
In individualist societies, people look after themselves and the immediate nuclear family.
In a masculine society, values are based on material success, money and possessions. Men
are expected to be assertive and ambitious, and women tender and concerned with
relationships.
The ‘feminine’ society has values of caring for others and preservation rather than progress.
People and good relationships are more important than money and things.
2.6 Keywords
Culture: It is a set of the set of shared attitudes, values, goals, and practices that characterises an
institution, organisation or group.
Collectivism: It measures the degree to which social bonds are formed between the individuals.
Individualism: It measures the extent to which the individuals in the country consider themselves Notes
as distant entities.
Universalism: When people believe what is true and good can be discovered, applied and
defined.
1. “Nationality (culture) had three times more influence on the shaping of managerial
assumptions than any of the respondents”. Do you agree? Justify.
2. Analyse the impact of the culture on the motivation of the employee’s internationally.
3. Being the HR of the international company, can you throw light on the importance of
multi cultural teams in the success of the international assignment?
4. Examine the critical issues that may affect the implementation of organisational cultures.
7. Bring out the comparison in HR practices followed in Japan and China giving examples.
8. Analyse how managerial styles may vary depending on the cultural context.
10. Do you think that culture makes an organisation sensitive to operate in international
environment? Justify giving example.
1. Language 2. Education
3. Aesthetics 4. Culture
5. Values 6. False
7. True 8. True
15. True
Rao, P.L. International Human Resource Management, First Edition, Excel Books,
New Delhi, 2008.
http://www.uri.edu/research/lrc/scholl/webnotes/Culture.htm
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
3.1.1 Export
3.4 Summary
3.5 Keywords
Objectives
Introduction
The human resource functions do not operate in a vacuum. The shift from a domestic to a global
focus affects the HR activities as well as other departments. As a consequence, HR activities are
determined by and influence various organisational factors, such as:
1. Stage of internationalisation;
Notes To a certain extent, how the internationalising firm copes with the HR demands of its various
foreign operations determines its ability to execute its chosen expansion strategies.
Apart from the strategic imperatives and staffing approaches, IHRM is affected by the way the
internationalisation process itself is managed. Most firms pass through several stages of
organisational development as the nature and size of their international activities grow. As they
go through these evolutionary stages, their organisational structures change, typically due to
the strain imposed by growth and geographical spread, the need for improved coordination and
control across business units and the constraints imposed by host-government regulations on
ownership and equity.
Multinationals evolving from a domestic to a truly global organisation may involve a long
process with many diverse steps. Some firms may use licensing, subcontracting, or other operation
modes, instead of establishing their own foreign production or service facilities. Others are able
to accelerate the process through acquisitions, thus leapfrogging over intermediate steps (i.e.,
move directly into foreign production through the purchase of a foreign rather than initial
exporting), followed by sales subsidiary.
Some firms can be driven by external factors such as host-government action (e.g., forced into a
joint venture) or an offer to buy a company. Others are formed expressly with the international
market in mind. The number of steps or stages, along the path to multinational status varies
from firm to firm.
Network of
Subsidiaries
Foreign
Production
Sales
Subsidiary
Exporting
Licensing Subcontracting
3.1.1 Export
Exporting is initial stage for the firms entering international operations. It rarely involves much
organisational response until the level of export sales reaches a critical point. Exporting may be
difficult for service companies (such as legal firms) so that they may be forced to make an early
step into foreign direct investment operations (via a branch office, or joint venture).
Exporting often tends to be handled by an intermediary (e.g., an export agent or foreign distributor
– usually an HCN, as local market knowledge is critical). As exports sales increase, an export
manager may be appointed to control foreign sales and actively seek new markets. This person Notes
is commonly from the domestic operations. Further growth in exporting may lead to the
establishment of an export department at the same level as the domestic sales department as the
firm becomes more committed to or more dependent on, its foreign export sales.
Managing Director
Domestic Export ?
Sales Sales
Source: P L Rao, International Human Resource Management: Test and Cases, First edition, Excel Books,
2008, New Delhi.
At this stage, exporting is controlled from the domestic-based home office through a designated
export manager. The role of the HR department is unclear. Though there are HR activities
involved (such as the selection of export staff), and perhaps training of the foreign agency staff,
these activities are handled by the marketing department or exporting staff, the HR department
has little involvement with the development of policies and procedures surrounding the HR
aspects of the firm’s early international activities.
As the firm develops expertise in foreign markets, agents and distributors are replaced by direct
sales with the establishment of branch offices in the foreign market countries and the company
creates an export division or function at the corporate home office and the export division head
directly reports to the CEO.
As international sales increase further, local governments exert pressure on these growing
markets for setting up on-site manufacturing facilities which prompts the company to set up a
subsidiary and a branch office in the concerned foreign countries. Each subsidiary is
responsible for operations within its own geographic area, and the subsidiary manager
reports directly to the export division head at the corporate office. PCNs are usually posted to
important positions because the firm has more confidence in them to implement proven home
office human resource policies and practices. This is known as the ethnocentric approach. The
decision to use PCNs leads into exportation of management issues and activities. At this point
the HR department becomes actively involved in the personnel aspects of the firm’s international
operations.
Notes
Figure 3.3: Use of Subsidies during Early Internationalisation
Home office
departments
Overseas
subsidiaries
This step may be considered small if the firm already is assembling the product abroad to take
advantage of cheap labour or to save shipping costs or tariffs or is thinking to establish a sales
subsidiary to foreign production. For other firms, the transition to foreign investment is a large
and sometimes prohibitive step.
Example: An Australian firm that was successfully exporting mining equipment to Canada
began to experience problems with after-sales servicing and delivery schedules. The
establishment of its own production facility was considered a great step, so the firm entered into
a licensing agreement with a Canadian manufacturer.
Having made the decision to produce overseas, the firm may establish its own foreign production
facilities, or enter into a joint venture with a local firm, or buy a local firm. Regardless of the
method of establishment, foreign production/service operations tend to trigger the creation of
a separate international division in which all international activities are grouped.
With the spread of international activities, the firm establishes miniature replicas of the domestic
organisations in foreign subsidiaries. The subsidiary managers report to the head of the
international division, and there may be some informal reporting directly to the various
functional heads.
Example: There may be contact regarding staffing issues between the HR managers in
the two subsidiaries and the HR manager at corporate headquarters.
Many firms at this stage of internationalisation are concerned about maintaining control of the
newly established subsidiary and will place PCNs in all key position in the subsidiary. While
others decide that local employment conditions require local handling and place an HCN in
charge of the subsidiary HR function, thus making an exception to the overall ethnocentric
approach.
Notes
Figure 3.4: International Division
Managing
Domestic Domestic
Division Division International
(Paint) (Tools) Division
The role of corporate HR staff is primarily concerned with expatriate management though there
will be some monitoring of the subsidiary HR function-formally through the head of the
International Division. Expatriate managers perform a major role: identifying employees who
can direct the daily operations of the foreign subsidiaries, supervising transfer of managerial
and technical know-how, communicating corporate policies, and keeping corporate HQ informed.
As the firm expands its foreign production or service facilities into other countries, increasing
the size of its foreign workforce, accompanied by a growth in the number of expatriates, more
formal HR policies become necessary.
As the firm moves from the early foreign production stage into a phase of growth through
production or service, standardisation, and diversification, the strain of sheer size creates problem
and the international division becomes overstretched making effective communication and
efficiency of operation difficult. So, corporate top managers become concerned that the
international division for its autonomy and independence from the domestic operations to the
extent that it operates as a separate unit.
Conflicts between the parent company (headquarters) and its subsidiaries arises due to the need
for national responsiveness at the subsidiary unit and global integration imperatives at the
parent headquarters. The demand for national responsiveness at the subsidiary unit develops
because of factors such as differences in market structures, distribution channels, customer
needs, local culture, and pressure from the host government. The need for more centralised
global integration by the headquarters comes from having multinational customers, global
competitors, and the increasingly rapid flow of information and technology and from the quest
for large volume for economies of scale. As a result of these various forces for change, the
multinational confronts two major issues of structure:
1. The extent to which key decisions are to be made at parent headquarter or at the subsidiary
units (centralisation vs. decentralisation), and
2. The type of control exerted by the parent over the subsidiary unit (bureaucratic control vs.
normative).
Notes The structural response, at this stage of internationalisation, can be either a product – or service-
based global structure or an area-based structure.
1. Product/service based global division: In this structure; the company treats each of its
major products as distinct Strategic Business Units (SBUs). Divisions/functions at the
corporate office are given worldwide responsibility for production, finance, marketing
and management of supply chain for each product or product line. These product divisions
also have internal functional support.
Headquarters
Corporate Human
Production Marketing Finance
Product Division Resource
Operating
Divisions
Product A Product B Product C Product D Product E
Great Britain
France
Germany
Netherland
Operating divisions
2. Area based global division: In this structure; a multinational prefers to division its foreign
operations on the basis of geographical unit rather than on product basis. The corporate
structure at the HQ remains as in case of product-based division. The HQ is responsible for
transferring excess resources from one country to another as required and to establish
coordination between different countries to provide synergy and overall goal achievement.
As part of the process of accommodating subsidiary concerns through decentralisation, the Notes
MNC strives to adapt its HRM activities to each host-country’s specific requirements; this impacts
the corporate HRM function. There is devolution of responsibility for local employee decisions
to each subsidiary, with corporate HR staff performing a monitoring role, intervening in local
affairs only in extreme circumstances.
Example: In the late-1980s, Ford Australia had a ceiling on its HRM decisions and any
decision that involved an amount above that ceiling (such as promotions above a certain salary
grade) had to be referred to its regional Headquarters for corporate approval. Expatriate
management remained the responsibility of corporate HR staff.
This HRM monitoring role reflects management’s desire for central control of strategic planning–
formulating, implementing, and coordinating strategies for its worldwide markets. The growth
in foreign exposure combined with changes in the organisational structure of international
operations results in an increase in the number of employees needed to oversee the activities
between the parent firm and its foreign affiliates.
Task Taking the example of any Indian firm, analyse the path which it will follow to
become truly global with the changes in the structure and the HR policies.
When a multinational is trying to integrate its operations in more than one dimension, like
product as well as area or customers and technology, it resorts to the matrix structure. Both
product division and area division share joint responsibility. This means both executives jointly
decide allocation of resources and other important matters but the matrix manager is responsible
for the results.
Human
Production Marketing Finance Resources
Vice-President Vice-President
Global Products International
Product A
Product B
Product C
Australia
Human Resources
Notes In this structure, there are pressures from horizontal matrix managers for equal allocation of
resources and the vertical managers are supposed to balance this by taking into account the
relative importance of products or projects based on organisational priorities and other long-
term considerations.
1. As the design complexity increases, coordinating the personnel and getting everyone to
work towards a common goals often becomes difficult.
2. Some employees experience dual authority, which is frustrating and confusing. So, managers
need excellent interpersonal and conflict-resolution skills.
Mergers, takeovers, joint ventures strategic alliances give way to newer variations in
organisational structure design and these can be of four types:
Did u know? Chaebol refers to a South Korean form of business conglomerate. They are
government-supported powerful global multinationals owning numerous international
enterprises. The Korean word means “business family” or “monopoly”. There are several
dozen large Korean family-controlled, government-assisted corporate groups. Through
aggressive governmental support and finance, some have become well-known
international brand names, such as Samsung, Hyundai and LG.
Self Assessment
1. HR activities are determined by and influence various organisational factors, like stage of
……….
3. Some firms may use licensing, ………., or other operation modes, instead of establishing
their own foreign production or service facilities.
5. Having made the decision to produce overseas, the firm may establish its own foreign
production facilities, or enter into a …………with a local firm, or buy a local firm.
6. In product/service based global division structure, the company treats each of its major
products as distinct Strategic ………. Units (SBUs).
Caselet BIC World
B
IC is a very large manufacturer of razors, lighter, and pens. Recently, it has simplified
its operations to run from large super factories that serve large geographical markets.
Product distribution is then organised by continent, with country managers
reporting to their continental manager. The organisation thus has a matrix structure based
on two main lines of communication – (1) by product category, (2) by geographical region.
The matrix structure allows combining the benefits of a strong product expertise, together
with strong operational structures per geographic area.
Source: http://businesscasestudies.co.uk/business-theory/people/organisation-and-management-
structures.html#axzz2HZ1gqE2H
International operations place additional stresses on control mechanisms. There is also additional
stress on the firm’s ability to coordinate resources and activities. The less-hierarchical and
networked structures that are evolving require coordination and human resource processes of
high-level involvement, taking into account cultural variables of each unit and national culture.
Human resource management plays a key role in control and coordination process in less
hierarchical structures:
1. The key means for vital knowledge generation and diffusion is through personal contact.
This means that networked organisations need processes to facilitate contacts. Training
and development programmes held in regional centres or at headquarters, become an
important forum for the development of personnel networks that foster informal
communication channels, as well as for building corporate culture.
2. Network relationships are built and maintained through personal contact. Therefore,
staffing decisions are crucial to the effective management of the linkages that the various
subsidiaries have established.
4. Staff transfers are also an important part of the required management processes, particularly
that of control. Multinationals continue to rely on the movement of key staff to assist in
coordination and control.
5. Expatriates are used to instil a sense of corporate identity in subsidiary operations, and to
assist in the transfer of corporate norms and values as part of corporate cultural (or
normative) control.
6. The visit of the CEO to different countries also helps in integrating relationships and
developing, strategic focus.
Control Mechanisms
Formal Informal
Structure
Reporting Systems
B udg et s
Personal Corporate
Performance Targets
Relationships Culture
It is important to remember that international growth affects the firm’s approach to HRM and Notes
the HRM implications at each stage of internationalisation. Firms vary from one another as they
go through the stages of international development, and react in different ways to the
circumstances they encounter in the various foreign markets.
International operations place additional stresses on control mechanisms. There is also additional
stress on the firm’s ability to coordinate resources and activities.
Traditionally multinational firms have emphasised more formal, structural forms of control. As
presented earlier in the chapter, strategy is implemented via the factoring of work flows, the
articulation of control by some combination of specialisation characterised by functional, global
product division, national, regional (area) divisions, or matrix structures. Structure results in
hierarchies, functional authority and increasingly prescribed job descriptions, selection criteria,
training standards and compensable factors. Human resource activities act to implement existing
structural systems of control. Communication and relationships are formalised and prescribed
and budgetary targets and ‘rational’, explicit, quantitative criteria dominate performance
management systems.
Complementary, yet definitely secondary control is developed and maintained via more informal
personal and social networks – the informal organisation. The unique cultural interactions and
the contextual and physical distances that characterised multinational operations may have
outstripped the capabilities of solely structural and formal forms of control.
Did u know? As long ago as 1981, William Ouchi termed the phrase ‘clan control’ to describe
social control as a legitimate control system to supplement or replace traditional structural,
bureaucratic control.
A more cultural focus emphasises the group level potential of corporate culture, informal social
processes, personal work networks and the investment in social capital to act as sources of more
complete and nimble control in a complex multi-product, multi-cultural environment. On the
individual level, an emphasis on persons (as opposed to jobs), their competencies and skills, and
the investment in human capital become the focus of more customised human resource practices
and processes. Formal, structural controls still exist, but they are not the primary source of
control. The complexities related to subsidiary mandate, reliance on local or corporate
technologies and skills, as well as the cultural distance between the corporate and host cultures
need to be considered in determining the mix of formal and informal control. Clearly more
research is called for in this topic area.
As network relationships are built and maintained through personal contact, organisations
need processes and forums where staff from various units can develop types of personal
relationships that can be used for organisational purposes. For example, working in cross-
functional and/or cross-border teams can assist in developing personal contacts. Training and
development programs, held in regional centres or at headquarters, become an important forum
for the development of personal networks that foster informal communication channels.
Notes Control through corporate culture: Some advocates of more complex structural forms regard
the use of cultural control as an effective informal control mechanism. Corporate culture is
variously defined, but essentially it refers to a process of socialising people so that they come to
share a common set of values and beliefs that then shape their behaviour and perspectives. It is
often expressed as ‘our way of doing things’. Cultural control may be a contentious issue for
some – evidence of multinational imperialism where corporate culture is superimposed upon
national cultures in subsidiary operations. However, its proponents offer persuasive arguments
as to its value as a management tool. The emphasis is on developing voluntary adherence to
corporate behavioural norms and expectations through a process of internalisation of corporate
values and beliefs. The literature on corporate culture recognises the role played by HR activities
in fostering corporate culture. For example, Alvesson and Berg regard HRM activities as important
means of establishing corporate culture identity. HR activities that build corporate culture
include recruitment and selection practices, as firms hire or ‘buy’ people who appear to hold
similar values. Training and development programs, reward systems and promotion are also
activities that reinforce company value systems.
Such reinforcement is considered to lead to more committed and productive employees who
evince appropriate behaviour and therefore reduce the need for formal control mechanisms.
Placement of staff is another method. Some global firms have become even more systematic in
their efforts to achieve control by way of shared corporate culture. These functions also help
organisations sustain in an international environment.
Self Assessment
10. Network relationships are built and maintained through personal contact.
11. Staff transfers are also an important part of the required management processes, in
particular that of control.
12. Expatriates have no role in the transfer of corporate norms and values as part of corporate
cultural.
13. The level of strategic control needed in an international operation is depicted along two
axes; the type of subsidiary operating in each country.
Within multinational companies, there is a need to balance international strategy with local
conditions and needs and move towards new organisational structures.
Global HRM functions like staffing, training and development of employees going out of nation
for assignments or working in a different environment, is essential to be paid attention to. One
of the key aspects of the strategic management of modern organisations is the balance between
differentiation and integration. While flexibility is required in the way business is conducted
differently in different locations, there is a need to integrate activity and coordinate not only
business activity but the way people are developed and deployed within the international
organisation.
The level of strategic control needed in an international operation is depicted along three axes: Notes
the type of subsidiary operating in each country; the type of international business strategy
employed; and the type of ownership.
Perlmutter’s Model
Perlmutter suggested different internationalising strategies that organisations tend to fit which
influence personnel practices within the global context. The ethnocentric approach is probably
closest to global organisation where control is tight from the centre with subsidiaries having
little autonomy and where key positions are held by home-country nations and there is a high
degree of management by expatriates. The polycentric approach sees each subsidiary as a separate
entity. Although subsidiaries are managed by locals, these same local managers are unlikely to
have a career in the international group or at headquarters. The ideal approach is seen as the
geocentric organisation.
In 1989, Bartlett and Ghoshal offered the ‘transnational’ as the ideal type. They distinguish:
multinational organisations; global organisations; international organisations; and, transnational
organisations.
1. Multinational: This type of organisation responds to the need to exploit national diversity
and recognise that consumer tastes and needs of technology may be based on local
Notes conditions and national culture. This type of organisation will have a strong national
presence and can respond to national diversity. There is very little direct influence from
the parent company and interpersonal communication among representatives from the
different cultures is quite limited.
Example: The American ITT, which needs to respond on a local basis to specific
regulations, requirements and formats in the telecommunications switching industry.
2. Global: The organisation exploits the cost advantages of centralised global scale operations
based on knowledge development that is retained at the centre and on the implementation
of the parent company’s strategies. It responds to the trends of growing globalisation of
tastes, fashions and consumer demand generally.
Example: The Japanese Matsushita which exploits and promotes the globalisation of
taste in consumer electrics, being export-based with research and development, manufacturing
and branding concentrated at the centre.
3. International: The organisation exploits the parent company’s knowledge and adapts it
worldwide. Sources of core competencies are centralised but other competencies may be
decentralised. The role of overseas operations is to adapt the parent company’s
competencies to the local environment. Knowledge is developed at the centre and then
transferred to the overseas subsidiaries.
(a) Global integration: the trend towards greater integration of global tastes. Product
trends such as Coca-Cola and McDonald’s are examples.
(b) Local differentiation: the demand of local and national tastes and of protectionism
from national governments tends towards multinational organisational
structures.
(c) Worldwide innovation: the cost of innovation is great and it is more cost-effective, if
research and development are centralised and such products emanating from the
centre are marketed globally or are adapted internationally in local centres around
the world.
Did u know? Vertical integration is a style of management control where companies are
united through a hierarchy with a common owner. Usually each member of the hierarchy
produces a different product or (market-specific) service, and the products combine to
satisfy a common need.
A company tends toward forward vertical integration when it controls distribution centers
and retailers where its products are sold.
Balanced vertical integration means a firm controls all of these components, from raw Notes
materials to final delivery.
The four phases identified are: domestic, with a focus on home markets and export; international,
with a focus on local responsiveness and the transfer of learning; multinational, with a focus on
global strategy and price competition; and global with a focus on both local responsiveness and
global integration.
!
Caution Adler and Ghadar’s model provides the relationship of culture and responses
within human resource management.
1. In the first phase, domestic, there is a denying or ignoring of other cultural contexts
with foreigners simply being offered a product developed in the home country.
4. In the fourth phase, global, there is a more complete adaptation to local markets of
global products and cultural sensitivity and the international human resource function
attempts to provide managers from anywhere with opportunities to develop in
order to develop the organisation itself.
1. Inter-unit linkages involve the organisation’s mechanisms for managing the differentiation
and integration of its operating units.
2. Internal operations involves the need for each operating unit (e.g. subsidiary) to function
effectively within its own (national or market environment).
The strategic international human resource issues in their framework are concerned with these
two components and with the need to manage the international organisation by balancing
differentiation and integration and balancing the autonomy of local units against the need to
coordinate and control them.
Notes
Figure 3.9: Integrated Strategic Framework
Exogenous factors
- industrial characteristics
- country/regional
characteristics
s
SIHRM policies/ local
s
practices responsiveness
s
flexibility
staffing learning and
internal operations appraising transfer
local sensitivity compensation
strategic fit developing
Endogenous factors
Some companies have large centralised human resource functions for selecting many
functions and repatriating expatriate staff, training and compensation. Others devolve many
functions to the subsidiaries either as well as this central function or instead of it. If general
guidelines are formulated by the centre that refer only to the need to develop a system for
rewarding individual performance, subsidiaries may then be free to develop their own incentive
schemes.
Functions and policies are aimed ultimately at meeting the concerns and goals of the multinational
organisation. These include global competitiveness, efficiency, local responsiveness, flexibility,
and organisational learning and transfer of information.
These concerns vary from company to company. By studying the various factors which
are pressing hard for international integration against those factors which point towards
local differentiation, it is possible to discuss an optimum instance for managing
people in subsidiary operations. This should be achievable by charting a course through these
two opposing forces and by drawing on the contributions that can be made from the parent and
the different subsidiaries. This requires consideration of the strategic factors that should be
addressed to provide the optimum balance between integration and differentiation, a
consideration of cultural differences that exist among the different national operations and the
relative contributions which can be made by people in the different national organisations to
the global operation.
Notes
Figure 3.10: Strategy Optimising Factors in Developing People Management Policies
Parent
International
Mu lt i- do me stic Global
s
Resource dependencies
Strategic choice
Required interaction
low high
between subsidiaries
Acquisition
Greenfield investment
s
Local dependencies
High presence of
Unionization
expatriates
Regulatory pressures
Local
embededness
subsidiaries
There is a need to develop the appropriate management skills to meet the needs of the individual
and need to develop attitudes and flexibility towards managing change, and managing across
cultures.
Thurely and Widenius characterise these differences between Japanese and American
management theory and practice as: work security versus individual freedom; organisational
Notes loyalty versus job competence; consultation and involvement versus management authority;
and work group innovation versus specialist know-how. They are concerned about developing
a ‘functional’ model of management in the European context that reflects the different cultural
values and legal institutional practices in Europe. They present European management as:
emerging and being linked to the ideal of European integration, which is continuously
encompassing more and different countries; reflecting key values including pluralism and
tolerance, although not consciously developed from those values; being associated with a balanced
stakeholder philosophy and the concept of social partners.
1. There is no national identity across the European Community as there is in Japan and the
USA; for example there is no equivalent of the ‘American Dream’.
3. Change is more complex than in American or Japan, particularly with the further
integration of Eastern and Central European countries, and this is in some ways artificial
in creation: manufactured by the architects and politicians of the Single European Market,
signifying the higher level of creativity needed to manage in this environment.
4. There is increasing cross-border activity through mergers and acquisitions, joint ventures
and direct investment situations requiring approaches to management such as project
management and networking.
7. There is a need to manage increasing diversity (between cultures rather than trying to
create a uniform culture), ambiguity and complexity and an increasing need to create
more flexible organisations and methods of working in order to cope with both diversity
and change.
Within this context the management of people may be rather more complex than in American
models of human resource management and a higher level of flexibility may be required
compared with Japanese approaches.
European model of People Management state that horizontal linkages and lateral hierarchies
and communication are becoming particularly important in regions such as Europe, where
there is a need to develop flexibility and innovative processes. This is in keeping with the
necessity to facilitate the transfer of information and to share and generate new knowledge
within the concept of the learning organisation. McCalman describes the specific example
of the setting up and operation of a cross-functional and cross-cultural project team tasked
with developing a Europe-wide customer order delivery system that guaranteed delivery
to the customer within 10 days. What was a complex logistic planning process was to be
devised laterally by this management group, which would meet regularly at different
European locations.
In establishing the project team, a major consideration was that the task had to involve a
lot of people across Europe, in order to fully understand the process that required one
Contd...
supply base and delivery to a number of countries. In each country, differences had to be Notes
understood, which was unique or common enough to make an impact on the process.
The project manager therefore had to select the team based on his understanding of the
company and where he thought the skills lay within it. Through networking, it was
possible to establish this where the manager did not know.
Self Assessment
14. Perlmutter suggested different internationalising strategies that organisations tend to fit
which influence personnel practices within the global context.
15. According to Thurely and Widenius, there is no national identity across the European
Community as there is in Japan and the USA.
Case Study GE’s Acquisition in Hungary
I
n January 1990, the U.S. multinational, General Electric (GE), invested in Tungsram, a
Hungarian lighting company, as part of its European market expansion strategy. By
1994, its equity had risen to 99.6%. The Hungarian operation had 13 existing factories
employing 17,600 workers. GE initially appointed a Hungarian-born U.S. expatriate
employing as its top manager, though he was later replaced when Tungsram was brought
under the direct control of GE Lighting Europe in 1993. Staff transfers played an important
role in training and developing the Hungarian staff. Key executives were brought over
from the United States for varying lengths of time (three to six months) to assist in knowledge
and skills transfer. Management training also involved sending Tungsram staff to the
United States, giving selected Hungarians exposure to GE’s working environment, and
American life in general. In order to improve Tungsram’s competitiveness, GE reduced
staff levels by almost half and closed five plants, despite the unionised environment; it
also invested heavily in training (quality programmes) to improve production workers’
output. During this period, its European market share increased from 5% in 1989 to 15% in
1994.
Questions
2. Did GE’s top manager anticipate the HR investment that the Tungsram acquisition
would entail prior to its decision to purchase the Hungarian firm?
3. Was it proper to GE to replace the Hungarian-born U.S. expatriate as its top manager
of Tungsram when it came under direct control of GE lighting Europe?
Source: Rao, P.L. (2008). International Human Resource Management. First Edition. Excel Books. New
Delhi.
3.4 Summary
Notes To a certain extent, how the internationalising firm copes with the HR demands of its
various foreign operations determines its ability to execute its chosen expansion strategies.
Apart from the strategic imperatives and staffing approaches, IHRM is affected by the way
the internationalisation process itself is managed.
Most firms pass through several stages of organisational development as the nature and
size of their international activities grow.
As the firm develops expertise in foreign markets, agents and distributors are replaced by
direct sales with the establishment of branch offices in the foreign market countries and
the company creates an export division or function at the corporate home office and the
export division head directly reports to the CEO.
MNCs use different approaches to manage and staff their subsidiaries. While a firm goes
through evolutionary stages, their organisation structure changes.
HRM plays an important role in control and coordination process. As the firm goes
international, there is a need for an integrated framework of strategic international HRM.
3.5 Keywords
Global: The Company that applies the global integration business strategy to manage the staff.
IHRM: It is the art of managing different people with various cultures across countries.
Matrix structure: Structure, that results from the integration of the operations of the MNC in
more than one dimension.
Multinational Enterprise (MNE): A firm that takes a global approach to its foreign markets and
production.
Vertically integrated: Companies are united through a hierarchy with a common owner.
1. Analyse the attitudes of MNCs towards building a multinational enterprise, giving details.
4. Analyse the various factors that needs to be addressed for developing international
organisations.
5. Examine the changes in the HRM policy as the firm transcends across its national borders.
6. Giving the examples, explain the stages of structural evolution of multinationals along Notes
with the developments in the new types of multinational structures.
8. You are the HR manager in an Indian firm. Give a detail plan of the changes in the policy
and procedures as your firm will go for process of Internationalisation.
10. Analyse the Bartlett and Ghoshal model for internationalisation on any Indian firm.
11. Analyse the differences in the HR polices of the Indian firm and those of the MNCs.
12. Taking the example of McDonald’s, explain the process of global integration.
13. Analyse the advantages and disadvantages of the ethnocentric approach followed by a
firm.
14. Examine the global status of Coca-cola in terms of its product/service and area division
giving the network structures and changes in the HR policies.
1. Internationalisation 2. Strategic
3. Subcontracting 4. Exporting
7. Keiretsu 8. False
15. True
Rao, P.L. (2008). International Human Resource Management. First Edition. Excel
Books. New Delhi.
Notes Brewster, C., Sparrow, P. and Harris, H. (2005). ‘Towards a New Model of Globalizing
HRM’, International Journal of Human Resource Management, 16(5): 949–70.
http://www.monroecollege.edu/AcademicResources/ebooks/
0324580347_lores_p01_ch02.pdf
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
4.4 Summary
4.5 Keywords
Objectives
Introduction
Globalisation is a powerful real aspect of the new world system, and it represents one of the
most influential forces in determining the future course of the planet. It has manifold dimensions:
economic, political, security, environmental, health, social, cultural, and others. The focus here
is on the concept of “globalisation” as applied to the world economy HRM, the drivers of
globalisation and also the variables that moderate differences between HRM and GHRM.
“Globalisation” here means major increases in worldwide trade and exchanges in an increasingly
open, integrated, and borderless international economy. There has been remarkable growth in
such trade and exchanges, not only in traditional international trade in goods and services, but
also in exchanges of currencies, in capital movements, in technology transfer, in people moving
through international travel and migration, and in international flows of information and
ideas. Globalisation has involved greater openness in the international economy, an integration
of markets on a worldwide basis, and a movement toward a borderless world, all of which have
led to increases in global flows.
Notes
!
Caution The world economy is being transformed by a combination of:
There are several sources of globalisation over the last several decades. Technological advances
that have significantly lowered the costs of transportation and communication and dramatically
lowered the costs of data processing and information storage and retrieval comprise one such
source. The latter stems from developments over the last few decades in electronics, especially
the microchip and computer revolutions. Electronic mail, the Internet, and the World Wide Web
are some of the manifestations of this new technology, where today’s $2,000 laptop computer is
many times more powerful than a $10 million mainframe computer of twenty-five years ago.
Real time information about world events through television and the internet
Technology has aided the development of a single global capital market (New
York, London, Tokyo stock markets)
Another source of globalisation is trade liberalisation and other forms of economic liberalisation
that have led to reductions in trade protection and to a more liberal world trading system. This
process began in the last century, but the two World Wars and the Great Depression interrupted
it. It resumed after World War II through the most-favoured-nation approach to trade
liberalisation, as embodied in the 1946 General Agreement on Tariffs and Trade (GATT) that has
evolved into the World Trade Organisation (WTO). As a result, there have been significant
reductions in tariffs and other barriers to trade in goods and services. Other aspects of
liberalisation have led to increases in the movement of capital and other factors of production.
Some economists and historians have suggested that globalisation is little more than a return to
the world economy of the late nineteenth century and early twentieth century.
and autonomy of the state, but, while these firms are powerful, the nation state still retains its Notes
traditional and dominant role in the world economic and political system.
Removal of trade barriers and free capital flows (relative effects on exchange rates)
Globalisation has clearly changed the world system and that it poses both opportunities and
challenges. It is also clear that the technological, policy, institutional, ideological, and cultural
developments that have led to globalisation are still very active. Thus, barring a radical move in
a different direction, these trends toward greater globalisation will likely continue or even
accelerate in the future. One important aspect of these trends will be the growth in international
trade in services that has already increased substantially but promises even greater growth in
the future, especially in such areas as telecommunications and financial services. The result will
be continued moves toward a more open and a more integrated world as it moves closer and
closer to a planet without borders and to a more integrated, open, and interdependent world
economy. The result will be even greater worldwide flows of goods, services, money, capital,
technology, people, information and ideas.
Globalisation has had significant impacts on all economies of the world, with manifold effects.
It affects their production of goods and services. It also affects the employment of labour and
other inputs into the production process. In addition, it affects investment, both in physical
capital and in human capital. It affects technology and results in the diffusion of technology
from initiating nations to other nations. It also has major effects on efficiency, productivity and
competitiveness. Several impacts of globalisation on national economies deserve particular
mention. One is the growth of foreign direct investment (FDI) at a prodigious rate, one that is
much greater than the growth in world trade. Such investment plays a key role in technology
transfer, in industrial restructuring and in the formation of global enterprises, all of which have
major impacts at the national level. A second is the impact of globalisation on technological
innovation. New technologies, as already noted, have been a factor in globalisation, but
globalisation and the spur of competition have also stimulated further advances in technology
and speeded up its diffusion within nations through foreign direct investment. A third is the
growth of trade in services, including financial, legal, managerial, and information services and
intangibles of all types that have become mainstays of international commerce.
Did u know? In 1970, less than a third of foreign direct investment related to the export of
services, but today that has risen to half and it is expected to rise even further, making
intellectual capital the most important commodity on world markets.
As a result of the growth of services both nationally and internationally, some have called this
“the age of competence,” underscoring the importance of lifelong education and training and
the investment in human capital in every national economy.
5. Technological factors include real time information about world events through television
and the ………….
6. ……….. have led to increases in the movement of capital and other factors of production.
7. Geopolitical factors include emerging global economy is demise of ………. and the rise of
market based economies.
The globalisation of markets refers to the merging of historically distinct and separate national
markets into one huge global marketplace. In many markets today, the tastes and preferences of
consumers in different nations are converging upon some global norm.
In the past, marketers have capitalised on the demand stemming from the developed regions of
the world; North America, Europe and Australasia. Demand in these markets remains strong.
However, growth has slowed significantly in the recent past. International marketers are now
turning to the developing regions of the world where there is still huge potential for market
growth.
The emerging markets with the highest growth potential are located in Africa, South America,
Asia and Eastern Europe. More specifically, international marketers are focusing their efforts on
gaining entry into South Africa, Brazil, India, China, and Russia. As these markets become more
industrialised, workers are able to earn a more stable and higher income.
There are a few key factors that you can look at to identify the emerging markets with the most
potential. Population and population growth forecasts are useful indicators of total market size.
The population of India and China combined is over 2.5 billion people, clearly indicating why
international marketers are interested in entering these markets.
The level of infrastructure in an emerging market is another good indicator of market potential.
When engaging in international operations, you rely heavily on services provided by the local
market. You are likely to utilise transportation systems, communication systems and energy
infrastructure to sell and distribute your products and services. It will be easier and more cost
effective to work in countries that already have reasonably well developed and reliable
infrastructure.
Income and spending behaviour are also important factors to consider when analysing an
emerging market. When looking at income figures, ensure that you look at the median income
rather than the average income. This is because many developing countries feature a small
amount of the population who hold the majority of the countries wealth. This can cause average
income figures to overestimate what the majority of the population actually earns in a year.
Spending and consumption behaviour takes into account the way that people spend their income. Notes
For example, is all of a family’s income spent on basic necessities (food, clothing, shelter) or is
there enough left over to be spent on luxury goods (electrical appliances, cars, computers)? You
also need to look at the culture of spending. For example, do families save their disposable
income or do they like to spend it on products that define status in the developing world, like
brand name clothes, a car or a mobile phone?
By carefully analysing all of the issues and factors that influence market potential, you can work
out which markets you should target and what marketing strategies you can use to gain a
market share. There are barriers to entering many of the world’s emerging economies, however,
the potential for achieving international marketing success in these regions should not be
ignored.
The push towards global free trade has resulted in the establishment of many free trade
agreements between countries, the developed of regional trading groups and the creation of the
World Trade Organisation.
It is generally believed that opening up trade between nations and regions is better for consumers
as it allows prices to be set based on actual supply and demand. Protectionist policies generally
set prices at an artificial level. By preventing fair competition from international suppliers, they
keep prices inflated at a higher point than they would be under a free market.
Once international competitors are freely able to enter markets, their costs are reduced. These
cost savings are largely passed on to consumers driving demand for products and services. This
can have a positive impact on the local economy as more people are able to afford a wider range
of consumer goods.
The globalisation of production refers to the sourcing of goods and services from locations
around the globe to take advantage of national differences in the cost and quality of factors of
production (labor energy, land, and capital).
The goal for companies is to lower their overall cost structure or improve the quality or
functionality of their product and gain competitive advantage.
Promote the establishment of multinational treaties to govern the global business system.
The World Trade Organisation (WTO) which is responsible for policing the world trading
system and ensuring that nations adhere to the rules established in WTO treaties.
In 2008, 151 nations accounting for 97% of world trade were members of the WTO.
The International Monetary Fund (IMF) which maintains order in the international
monetary system.
The United Nations (UN) which maintains international peace and security, develops
friendly relations among nations, cooperates in solving international problems and
promotes respect for human rights, and is a centre for harmonising the actions of nations.
However, free trade can have a negative and significant impact on local industries. Many local
organisations are only able to compete against international organisations due to the trade
barriers put in place by their government. When these barriers are removed and the market is
flooded with cheaper, superior or even equal products compared to those being produced
locally, the domestic businesses are unable to compete. This can lead to business closures,
unemployment and reduced demand.
International trade occurs when a firm exports goods or services to consumers in another
country.
Foreign direct investment (FDI) occurs when a firm invests resources in business activities
outside its home country.
During the 1920s and 1930s, many nations erected barriers to international trade and FDI
to protect domestic industries from foreign competition.
After World War II, advanced Western countries began removing trade and investment
barriers.
Under GATT (the forerunner of the WTO), over 100 nations negotiated further decreases in
tariffs and made significant progress on a number of non-tariff issues.
Under the WTO, a mechanism now exists for dispute resolution and the enforcement of
trade laws, and there is a push to cut tariffs on industrial goods, services, and agricultural
products.
Lower trade barriers enable companies to view the world as a single market and establish
production activities in optimal locations around the globe.
This has led to an acceleration in the volume of world trade and investment since the early
1980s.
The World Trade Organisation (WTO) was established in 1995 to supervise and encourage
international free trade. It assists countries with the formation of free trade agreements and
aims to stimulate economic growth. The WTO does not force any countries into free trade
agreements. It only acts as a mediator during negotiations instigated by the countries involved.
Free trade is an especially important issue for the world’s developing economies. They are often
able to produce products at a lower cost than in other countries, and the income they earn from
exports allows their economies to grow rapidly and improves the living standards of the
population. It also provides them with access to technology and expertise from the developed
world that would otherwise take years to develop.
From a global perspective, it is clear that the benefits of free trade are significant for consumers
and organisations. Whilst some industries move to capitalise on the cheap labour in the
developing world, new industries with a focus on innovation and technology are created. The
increase in free trade around the world will continue to drive growth in the global economy
into the future.
reliable—and low priced. Multinational companies that concentrated on idiosyncratic consumer Notes
preferences have become befuddled and unable to take in the forest because of the trees. Only
global companies will achieve long-term success by concentrating on what everyone wants
rather than worrying about the details of what everyone thinks they might like.
Task Study the FDI reforms and find out what percentage of FDI is permitted in various
sectors.
Lower trade barriers enable companies to view the world as a single market and establish
production activities in optimal locations around the globe.
This has led to an acceleration in the volume of world trade and investment since the early
1980s.
The development of the microprocessor has lowered the cost of global communication
and therefore the cost of coordinating and controlling a global organisation.
Web-based transactions have grown from virtually zero in 1994 to $250 billion in 2007 in
the U.S. alone, and Internet usage is up from fewer than 1 million users in 1990 to 1.3
billion users in 2007.
Commercial jet aircraft and super freighters and the introduction of containerisation have
greatly simplified transshipment from one mode of transport to another.
Self Assessment
Caselet Technology Globalisation
G
lobalisation of Technology can be measured by the global presence of a technology
company. One simple measure might be the number of non-U.S. companies traded
on the NASDAQ exchange. Presumably, NASDAQ trading reflects a non-U.S.
technology company’s ability to break through regional barriers and gain international
recognition.
Consider these numbers: As of August 5, seven companies that are registered in Australia
are traded on NASDAQ; six that are registered in Japan, five in the UK, four in Singapore,
two in France, three in Germany, two in South Korea, three in India, three in Argentina,
one in Brazil, one in Spain and one in Sweden. In contrast, one figure stands out: 63
companies registered in Israel are traded on NASDAQ.
Source: knowledge.wharton.upenn.edu/article.cfm?articleid=2316
Like a snowball rolling down a steep mountain, globalisation seems to be gathering more and
more momentum. And the question frequently asked about globalisation is not whether it will
continue, but at what pace.
A disparate set of factors will dictate the future direction of globalisation, but one important
entity—sovereign governments—should not be overlooked. They still have the power to erect
significant obstacles to globalisation, ranging from tariffs to immigration restrictions to military
hostilities. Nearly a century ago, the global economy operated in a very open environment,
with goods, services, and people able to move across borders with little if any difficulty. That
openness began to wither away with the onset of World War I in 1914, and recovering what was
lost is a process that is still underway. Along the process, governments recognised the importance
of international cooperation and coordination, which led to the emergence of numerous
international organisations and financial institutions (among which the IMF and the World
Bank, in 1944).
Indeed, the lessons included avoiding fragmentation and the breakdown of cooperation among
nations. The world is still made up of nation states and a global marketplace. We need to get the
right rules in place so the global system is more resilient, more beneficial, and more legitimate.
International institutions have a difficult but indispensable role in helping to bring more of
globalisation’s benefits to more people throughout the world. By helping to break down barriers—
ranging from the regulatory to the cultural—more countries can be integrated into the global
economy, and more people can seize more of the benefits of globalisation.
Task Chart out the growth path followed by globalisation after the phase of liberalisation
and industrial revolution.
Downward pressure on wages: As more work can be mechanised, and as fewer people are
needed to do a given job than in the past, the demand for that labour will fall, and as a
result the prevailing wages for that labor will be affected as well.
The “race to the bottom”: In an open global market, while jurisdictions do compete with
each other to attract investment, this competition incorporates factors well beyond just
the hourly wage rate. According to the UN Information Service, the developed world
hosts two-thirds of the world’s inward foreign direct investment. The 49 least developed
countries—the poorest of the developing countries—account for around 2 per cent of the
total inward FDI stock of developing countries.
Openness to globalisation will, on its own, deliver economic growth: Integrating with the
global economy is, as economists like to say, a necessary, but not sufficient, condition for
Contd...
economic growth. For globalisation to be able to work, a country cannot be saddled with Notes
problems endemic to many developing countries, from a corrupt political class, to poor
infrastructure, and macroeconomic instability.
The shrinking state: Technologies that facilitate communication and commerce have curbed
the power of some despots throughout the world. But in a globalised world, governments
take on new importance in one critical respect, namely, setting, and enforcing, rules with
respect to contracts and property rights. The potential of globalisation can never be realised
unless there are rules and regulations in place, and individuals to enforce them. This gives
economic actors’ confidence to engage in business transactions.
Self Assessment
11. Sovereign governments have the power to erect significant obstacles to globalisation,
ranging from tariffs to ……… restrictions to military hostilities.
12. Governments recognised the importance of international ………. and coordination and
this led to the emergence of numerous international organisations and financial institutions.
14. By helping to break down barriers ranging from the regulatory to the cultural, more
countries can be integrated into the global ……….
15. It’s a myth that technologies which facilitate communication and ………. have curbed the
power of some despots throughout the world.
Case Study Nike: Reasons for Globalisation
L
ike any multinational company, Nike used the process of globalisation because
the managers felt that the company could benefit by doing so. However, it is
worth noting that the company actually started out as a global network; the very
first shoes that they sold were made in Japan, and imported into the United States. Today,
the global reach of Nike is much more significant.
They have manufacturing operations in 45 countries, and their products are sold in almost
ever country on Earth. This sort of expansion cannot happen without a detailed plan, and
a plan needs to be “sold” to the decision makers if it is to be accepted. These are some of
the reasons that the managers at Nike could have used to justify their expansion:
1. Lower input costs: Like any business, Nike aims to buy their products for the lowest
possible price, and then sell them for a profit. The higher the margin, the more their
wealth will increase with each sale. There is no doubt that in choosing to have their
shoes manufactured in other countries, Nike has been able to access workers who
are paid lower wages than they would have to pay if they established their production
lines in America. Lowering costs is a key goal for managers in most companies.
2. Access new markets: While the population of the United States is large, there are
even more people in the rest of the world. In choosing to sell their shoes in other
countries, Nike was able to gain access to even greater number of consumers. This
Contd...
Notes allowed them to increase their global sales, which ultimately resulted in an increase
in profits.
3. Access resources: One of the most important inputs used in the production of Nike
shoes is rubber. Rubber is a resource which is not produced in the United States; if
the manufacturing arm of Nike wants to use it, they will need to find it in other
countries.
4. Transportation costs: At first glance it might seem that transport costs for the
company would be higher if they adopt a globalised approach. However, with
customers all over the world, Nike needed a way to ensure that their transport costs
could be minimised to all of their customers. While it might be cheaper to sell to
American customers from a US based distribution centre, it is far more expensive to
sell to other customers from that location.
5. Economies of scale: We have seen that Nike is keen to expand their customer base,
but at the same time they would like to minimise their transport costs. In order to
achieve these joint goals, production has been centralised in certain countries. This
has allowed for very high production levels, and as a result of this the company has
been able to achieve economies of large scale production. In other words, producing
in this way has enabled them to lower their cost per item.
Question
List some other reasons which may have lead managers at Nike to opt for Globalisation.
Source: economics.mrwood.com.au/unit2/ecoglobal/nike/nike3.asp
4.4 Summary
Globalisation is a powerful real aspect of the new world system, and it represents one of
the most influential forces in determining the future course of the planet.
There has been remarkable growth in such trade and exchanges, not only in traditional
international trade in goods and services, but also in exchanges of currencies, in capital
movements, in technology transfer, in people moving through international travel and
migration, and in international flows of information and ideas.
There are several sources of globalisation over the last several decades.
Virtually every major national or international enterprise has such a structure or relies on
subsidiaries or strategic alliances to obtain a comparable degree of influence and flexibility.
Globalisation has clearly changed the world system and that it poses both opportunities
and challenges. It is also clear that the technological, policy, institutional, ideological, and
cultural developments that have led to globalisation are still very active.
Globalisation has had significant impacts on all economies of the world, with manifold Notes
effects.
The globalisation of markets refers to the merging of historically distinct and separate
national markets into one huge global marketplace.
In many markets today, the tastes and preferences of consumers in different nations are
converging upon some global norm.
4.5 Keywords
Emerging Economies: Emerging economies are nations with social or business activity in the
process of rapid growth and industrialisation.
Foreign Direct Investment (FDI): An investment made by a company or entity based in one
country, into a company or entity based in another country.
Human Capital: The skills, knowledge, and experience possessed by an individual or population,
viewed in terms of their value or cost to an organisation.
Infrastructure: The stock of fixed capital equipment in a country, including factories, roads,
schools, etc., considered as a determinant of economic growth.
International Trade: International trade is exchange of capital, goods, and services across
international borders or territories.
Market: A market is any place where the sellers of a particular good or service can meet with the
buyers of that goods and service where there is a potential for a transaction to take place.
Multinational Enterprise: A multinational enterprise is any business that has productive activities
in two or more countries.
1. Globalisation 2. Openness
3. Geopolitical 4. Technological
7. Communism 8. False
15. Economy
Assignments
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
5.1 Recruitment Process
5.1.1 MNCs International Staffing Approaches
5.1.2 International Assignments
5.1.3 Role of Expatriates
5.2 Issues in Staff Selection
5.2.1 Selection Process
5.3 Selection Criteria
5.4 Factors Moderating Performance
5.4.1 The Factors
5.4.2 Expatriate Failure
5.4.3 Success in International Assignment
5.5 Dual-career Couples
5.5.1 Female Expatriates
5.6 Summary
5.7 Keywords
5.8 Review Questions
5.9 Further Readings
Objectives
Explain the process of recruitment and selection of staff for international assignment
Introduction
Notes respect to cost and quality, they will have to improve their human resource management. They
must plan their recruitment and selection process to develop an effective workforce. Employees
must be viewed as valuable assets–resources that are vital to the successful performance of the
organisation. Talented people must be attracted to join the organisation, developed to perform
at high levels, and encouraged to remain with the organisation with loyalty and commitment to
the organisation and its objectives.
In the human resource cycle, recruitment and selection process are the main variables influencing
directly the ‘performance’ as also the ‘employee development processes. Recruitment is defined
as the process of identifying and attracting the potential candidate from within and outside an
organisation to begin evaluating them for future employment. Once candidates are identified,
an organisation can begin its selection process which means collecting, measuring and evaluating
the information about the candidates.
The four generic processes: selection, performance appraisal, rewards management and human
resource development reflect sequential managerial tasks. Performance is a function of all the
human resource components: selecting people who are able to best perform the job defined by
the structure; motivating employees by rewarding them judiciously, training and developing
people for future performance and appraising employees in order to justify the rewards. The
strategy and structure also impact performance through the manner in which the jobs are
designed, how the organisation is structured and how well services and products are planned to
meet environmental threats and opportunities.
These basic resource processes can be done at three levels: strategic level which deals with
policy formulation and goal setting; managerial level which is concerned with the availability
and allocation of resource to carry out the strategy plan; and at the operational level to carry out
day-to-day activities.
Recruitment is the process by which an organisation attracts people to apply for their job
openings. The goal is to recruit a pool of qualified candidates from which he desired people may
be selected. Recruitment process in international context is very complex. It begins with human
resource planning, developing the strategy for searching the potential candidates, attracting an
effective workforce to apply for the vacancies and proceeding further with the selection process.
Recruitment can be categorised into two types: (1) external recruitment; and (2) internal
recruitment. External recruitment is conducted in four steps:
1. Planning: Human resource managers must first determine those jobs they wish to fill,
how many candidates they can reach and how many of them would accept the job offer.
2. Strategy Development: Next, a strategy is developed that specifies where to look for
candidates, as well as how and when to look.
3. Searching: Based on the plan and the strategy, candidates are contacted and given job
information and applications are collected. From this pool of candidates, the required
new people are hired.
Sources for external recruitment include direct applications received (walk-ins and applications
by mail), public employment agencies, private employment agencies, executive search firms,
schools and colleges, professional associations, all branches of the military, unions, the
handicapped, summer interns, and former employees.
Internal recruitment consists of promotion from within, job posting, and contacts and referrals Notes
by current employees. Another especially good source of recruitment candidates is through the
collection of temporary, part-time, and contract workers that has become known as the “temps”.
Did u know? One technique of the recruitment process is known as the Realistic Job Preview
(RJP), by which every candidate is given all the pertinent and realistic information about
both the job and organisation. Both the positive and negative sides of the job and the firm
are included. In this manner, a candidate can make a more-informed choice and select jobs
for which, he or she is better suited. In the long run, the RJP helps to improve overall job
satisfaction and performance. It also avoids situations where dissatisfaction and poor
performance results from a person finding that the job and its environment were not as
advertised.
2. The need to maintain good communication, coordination, and control links with corporate
headquarters.
For instance, when a multinational acquires a firm in another country, it may wish to initially
replace local managers with PCNs to ensure that the new subsidiary complies with overall
corporate objectives and policies, or because the local staff may not have the required level of
competence.
An ethnocentric policy, however, has a number of disadvantages. Zeira (1976) has identified
several major problems:
1. An ethnocentric staffing policy limits the promotion opportunities of HCNs, which may
lead to reduced productivity and increased turnover among that group.
2. The adaptation of expatriate managers to host countries often takes a long time during
which PCNs often make mistakes and make poor decisions.
3. When PCN and HCN compensation packages are compared, the often-considerable income
gap in favour of PCNs is viewed by HCNs as unjustified.
4. For many expatriates a key international position means new status, authority, and an
increase in standard of living. These changes may affect expatriates’ sensitivity to the
needs and expectations of their host-country subordinates.
Polycentric Approach: A polycentric staffing policy is one in which HCNs are recruited to
manage subsidiaries in their own country and PCNs occupy positions at corporate headquarters.
The main advantages of a polycentric policy are:
Notes 2. Employment of HCNs allows a multinational company to take a lower profile in sensitive
political situations.
A polycentric policy, however, has its own disadvantages. Perhaps the major difficulty is that of
bridging the gap between HCN subsidiary managers and PCN managers at corporate
headquarters. A second major problem associated with a polycentric staffing policy concerns
the career paths of HCN and PCN managers.
Geocentric Approach: The geocentric approach option utilises the best people for the key jobs
throughout the organisation, regardless of nationality. There are two main advantages to this
approach: it enables a multinational firm to develop an international executive team, and it
overcomes the “federation” drawback of the polycentric approach. Phatak (1995) believes the
feasibility of implementing a geocentric policy is based on five related assumptions:
1. Highly competent employees are available not only at headquarters, but also in the
subsidiaries;
3. Managers with high potential and ambition for promotion are constantly ready to be
transferred from one country to another;
4. Competent and mobile managers have an open disposition and high adaptability to
different conditions in their various assignments; and
5. Those not blessed initially with an open disposition and high adaptability can acquire
these qualities as their experience abroad accumulates.
There are disadvantages associated with a geocentric policy. First, host governments want a
high number of their citizens employed and will utilise immigration controls in order to force
HCN employment if not enough people with adequate skills are available. Most Western
countries require companies to provide extensive documentation if they wish to hire a foreign
national instead of a local national. Providing this documentation can be time-consuming,
expensive, and at times, futile.
Regiocentric Approach: One illustration of this approach is a regiocentric policy, which Heanan
and Perlmutter (1979) define as functional rationalisation on a more-than-one country basis. The
specific mix will vary with the nature of a firm’s business and product strategy. For example, a
U.S-based firm could create three regions: Europe, the Americas, and Asia-Pacific. Staff transfers
to the Asia-Pacific region from Europe would be rare, as would transfers from the regions to
headquarters in the United States.
One motive for using a regiocentric approach is that it allows interaction between executives
transferred to regional headquarters from subsidiaries in the region and PCNs posted to the
regional headquarters. There are some disadvantages in a regiocentric policy. It can produce
federalism at a regional rather than a country basis and constrain the organisation from taking
a global stance. Another difficulty is that while this approach does improve career prospects at
the national level, it only moves the barrier to the regional level. Staff may advance to regional Notes
headquarters but seldom to positions at the parent headquarters.
Based on the attitudes of the top management a multinational can pursue one of several approaches
to international staffing. It may even proceed on an ad hoc basis, rather than systematically
selecting one of the four approaches discussed above.
An international assignment has long been seen as providing executives with an opportunity
for personal growth and professional development, while enabling companies to place executives
in markets where specific capabilities are needed or to spread corporate values and best practices
throughout the organization. With business footprints expanding and international markets
becoming increasingly important drivers of revenue and profit growth, companies need
executives who are global thinkers with broad-based business perspectives and the ability to
master an array of markets, cultures, competitors and workforce differences.
With the globalization of businesses, opportunities and challenges, the need for expatriates in
international locations becomes a requirement. Global human resource managers need to
understand and recognize the signs of potential global assignment failures and their impact on
the business and long term objectives of the organization. International assignments end in
failure (when defined as a premature return) because of many factors that potentially affect the
adjustment of expatriates such as selection mechanisms and criteria, previous international
experience, cross-cultural training, individual factors, job factors, organizational culture,
organizational socialization as well as various non-work factors (Black, et al., 1991). The processes
of expatriate staffing and training programs are expensive and complex, particularly when the
company has to pay taxes for the parent-company employee in both countries (Deresky, 2011).
Effective training programs for expatriates contributed to the growing awareness among business
firms that the key to success rests with their ability to mobilize and utilize their human resources
in crafting and implementing new global business strategies (Selmer & Leung, 2007). Without
proper training and a realistic job preview, the expatriate will have a very hard time adjusting
to his/her new surroundings (Andreason, 2008).
Self Assessment
1. Recruitment is the process by which an organisation …………… people to apply for their
job openings.
3. Internal recruitment consists of promotion from within, job posting and contacts and
……….. by current employees.
Notes 5. The ………… approach option utilises the best people for the key jobs throughout the
organisation, regardless of nationality.
There are various issues which have to be taken care before selecting the expatriates for an
international assignment. The main advantages and disadvantages of utilising the various
nationality groups available to the multinational that is, Parent-country Nationals (PCNs),
Third-country Nationals (TCNs) and Host-country Nationals (HCNs) is analysed prior to
selection.
1. Managers Selection: The advantages and disadvantages of selecting the various managers
are analysed as:
Advantages
(iii) PCNs may be the best people for the job because of special skills and experiences.
(iv) There is assurance that subsidiary will comply with company objectives, policies,
etc.
Disadvantages
Advantages
(i) Salary and benefit requirements may be lower than for PCNs.
(ii) TCNs may be better informed than PCNs about host-country environment.
Disadvantages
(i) Transfers must consider possible national animosities (example, India and Pakistan).
(iii) TCNs may not want to return their own countries after assignment.
Advantages
(v) Morale among HCNs may improve as they see career potential.
Disadvantages Notes
(iii) Hiring HCNs limits opportunities for PCNs to gain foreign experience.
(iv) Hiring HCNs could encourage a federation of national rather than global units.
Example: Some Middle Eastern countries would not issue a work visa to a female
expatriate even if the multinational selected her. In many countries, social norms regarding the
role of women do not apply to female expatriates because locals regard them as foreigners. This
did appear to be the situation for female members of the U.S. armed forces station in Saudi
Arabia during the Gulf War.
Men in some cultures, such as certain Asian countries, do not like reporting to female managers,
particularly foreign women, and therefore women should not be posted abroad. Such beliefs
help create the glass border that supports the glass ceiling.
It is found that only 3% of U.S. expatriates were women. This shortage of women expatriates is
found to exist because:
(a) U.S. MNC executives believe that women are ineffective, unqualified, and uninterested in
foreign assignments.
(c) Foreign prejudices against women like prejudice of being a foreigner, dual-career families,
etc. would tend to make them ineffective.
(e) Men must be assigned in many locales to provide the required conservative corporate
image.
(f) It is unreasonable to send women into some countries, such as Pakistan or Saudi Arabia.
Indian women have a track record holding important political positions too few have achieved
similar success in ranks of business management like Indira Nooyi, Kiran Majhumdar, Chanda
Kocchar, etc. Progress in this area is still held back by traditional beliefs that women are second
class citizens whose place is in the home. More women excel in politics and in elected offices;
their acceptance and interest in corporate boardrooms are increasing gradually.
Caselet Dispelling Myths about Women Expatriates
U
S companies today are concerned that sending female employees on an overseas
assignment poses some sort of risk. But two international relocation experts say
this concern is unfounded and stems from some common myths about female
expatriates.
Contd...
Notes Myth #1: Overseas, local males treat American females very much like they treat local
females.
It is true that men in other cultures often deal with their own women in ways that many
Americans find objectionable, so it’s understandable that we wouldn’t want our own
women to endure such treatment. But intercultural training experts Cornelius Grove and
Willa Hallowell say that’s seldom a worry.
Myth #2: Local male co-workers create performance barriers for the female expatriate.
Not so, say Grove and Hallowell. “Our interviews reveal an ironically different story. It
turns out that many women who encounter significant barriers are more likely to complain
about their fellow expat male co-workers.
These women tell us that, American males who have been on overseas assignments for
many years actually erect the highest barriers. The women also say that local co-workers
can be very supportive of female expatriates if their respect and goodwill is carefully
cultivated.
Grove and Hallowell point to three attributes that is more likely to be a liability overseas
than being female – being single, being young, and being culturally American.
Being single is a liability because both local people and fellow expats often don’t know
how to comfortably fit a single person into their social lives. Regarding youth, let’s recall
that youthfulness is valued in American culture, whereas the tradition and wisdom
associated with age is more valued in other cultures, especially non-Western cultures.
Regarding the third point, any number of cultural experts have noted that traits associated
with success in the US business culture – task orientation, focus on time, competitiveness,
and directness – are consciously disapproved by some cultures.
In fact, the traits generally associated with females in the US – consensus building,
relationship orientation, greater sensitivity to non-verbal cues – are traits valued in many
non-Western cultures. And this, according to Grove and Hallowell, gives female assignees
a definite advantage.
Question
Discuss on the myths that lead to the germination of risks about female expatriates.
Source: http://www.overseasdigest.com/odarticles/females.htm
3. Family Considerations: Apart from the accompanying partner’s career, there are family
considerations that can cause a potential expatriate to decline the international assignment.
Disruption to children’s education is an important consideration, and the selected candidate
may reject the offered assignment on the grounds that a move at this particular stage in his
child’s life is inappropriate. The care of aging or invalid parents is another consideration.
4. Work Permit Refused: Some countries, such as the United States, are changing their
legislation to facilitate employment related immigration, which will make international
transfers some easier. The Social Charter allows for free movement of citizens of member
countries within the European Union. It is therefore important that HR staff keep up-to- Notes
date with changing legislation in the countries in which the multinational is involved.
Generally a work permit is granted to the expatriate only. The accompanying spouse or
partner may not be permitted to work in the host country. Increasingly, multinationals
are finding that the inability of the spouse to work in the host country may cause the
selected candidate to reject the offer of an international assignment.
5. Selecting TCNs: When selecting TCNs from within its own operations, the individual
factors identified – technical ability, cross-cultural adaptability, and family requirements
influence their selection. Situational factors may dominate the selection decision – such as
lack of suitably qualified or available PCNs. The issue of work permits may be crucial
determinate in the ability to use TCNs, as governments would prefer to see their own
nationals employed. It may be harder to justify the use of TCNs than PCNs.
An emerging trend is the use of foreign-born nationals, recruiting from ethic groups
living abroad.
Example: U.K. multinational may select a Canadian-born Chinese to head up its Chinese
facility. The majority of expatriate managers working in China were overseas Chinese from
Malaysia, Singapore, Hong Kong and Taiwan. The underlying assumption appears to be that
such appointments will reduce cross-cultural difficulties.
6. Selecting HCNs: The multinational must observe the host-country’s legal requirements
and social customs for hiring staff. Appointing a HCN as the HR manager is attractive
when the strategy is to appear as localised as possible. It is a way of ensuring that the local
operation conforms to local standards, thus avoiding the “bad press” that can result from
non-adherence.
In the recruitment and selection process, multinationals must address the issue of Equal
Employment Opportunity (EEO) for employees in all employment locations.
Example: Mandatory retirement and hiring ages are illegal in the United States and
some other countries, but remain a legal requirement in other countries.
Equal employment opportunity laws are expressions of social values with regard to employment
and reflect the values of a society or country. In parts of the Middle East, Africa, Asia, and Latin
Notes America, women have tended to have a lower social status and are not universally employed.
Multinationals must be aware of legislation and ensure subsidiary compliance where appropriate.
Obeying Local EEO Laws: In 1993, one of the Hyatt hotels in Australia had to explain to the Equal
Employment Opportunity Commissioner on national television that why it was circulating an
internal memo that violated Australian Equal Employment (EE) legislation. The internal memo
concerned was from a Japanese Hyatt hotel that had vacancies for two young single males.
Under Australian EE law, these constitute age, marital status, and sex discrimination respectively,
so the memo violated Australian law on three counts. The hotel’s defence that such circulation of
internal job vacancies was normal company practice was not acceptable. The EE Commissioner
did recognise that special circumstances may have been behind the internal memo–that the
positions were traineeships and that the persons would share accommodation in a male-only
dormitory.
Selection is the process by which the organisation chooses from among the applicants, those
people who are perceived the best meet the job requirements. For each candidate, the organisation
evaluates candidate skills, education, and experience to find the people who best ‘fit’ the particular
job specification. Ideal selection identifies the best fit between the person and the job.
Mitsubishi’s relations with its U.S. employees seem to be faring well, as the firm reports that
over 50% of its U.S. sales are vehicles that were manufactured in the U.S. (Business Week, 1988)
1. Application forms
2. Interviewing
3. Assessment centres
4. Employment testing
5. Reference checks
6. Physical examinations
7. Selection validation
9. ………. is the process by which the organisation chooses from among the applicants,
people who are perceived to best meet the job requirements.
10. An emerging trend is the use of foreign-born nationals, recruiting from …….. groups
living abroad.
Selection is a two-way process between the individual and the organisation. A prospective
candidate may reject the expatriate assignment, either for individual reasons, such as family
considerations, or for situational factors, such as the perceived toughness of a particular culture.
The factors involved in expatriate selection, both in terms of the individual and the specifics of
the situation concerned are as follows:
1. Technical Ability: Technical and managerial skills are an essential criterion for selection.
U.S. companies seem to focus their selection efforts on one single criterion – that of
technical competence – despite the importance of all the other criteria co-related to
interaction successes.
Reinforcing the emphasis on technical skills is the relative ease with which the multinational
can assess the potential candidate’s potential, since technical and managerial competence
can be determined on the basis of past performance. Since expatriates are usually internal
recruits’ personnel evaluation records can be examined and checked with the candidate’s
past and present superiors.
Notes 3. Family Requirements: The contribution that the family, particularly the spouse, makes to
the success of the international assignment.
Example: U.S. expatriates and their spouses working in Japan, Taiwan and Hong Kong
found that a favourable opinion about the international assignment by the spouse is positively
related to the spouse’s adjustment. The adjustment of the spouse was found to be highly correlated
to the adjustment of the expatriate manager. Reluctance on the part of Australian firms to
include spouses in the formal selection process because it was considered to be outside their
domain, and could evoke civil liberties concerns.
5. MNC Requirements: The multinational may consider the proportion of expatriates to local
staff when making selection decisions, mainly as an outcome of its staffing philosophy.
Operations in particular countries may require the use of more PCNs and TCNs than
would normally be the case, as multinational operating in parts of Eastern Europe and
China are discovering. Other situational factors include:
(c) The amount of knowledge transfer inherent in the expatriate’s job in the foreign
operation.
6. Language: The ability to speak a second language is an aspect often linked with cross-
cultural ability. Language skills may be regarded as of critical importance for some
expatriate positions. Some would argue that knowledge of the host-country’s language is
an important aspect of expatriate performance.
Another component to language as a situation factor in the selection decision is the role of the
common corporate language. Most multinationals whether consciously or not, adopt a common
corporate language as a way of standardising reporting systems and procedures. This is not an
issue for PCN selection within multinationals from the United States, the United Kingdom,
Canada, and Australia, where the chosen company language remains the same as that of the
home country. It becomes a PCN selection factor for multinationals from non-English speaking
countries that adopt English as the corporate language, unless the posting is to a country with a
shared language.
Task You are the corporate HR manager of IT Company. Design the model for selecting
the expatriates for the international assignments.
12. Some regions and countries are considered ‘hardship postings’, areas T the centre of major
cities and modern facilities.
13. The ability to speak a second language is an aspect often linked with cross-cultural ability.
14. Language skills may be regarded as not so important for some expatriate positions.
Most expatriates are managers or highly-trained technical experts. They have the necessary
technical and managerial skills, enhanced communication between parent company and foreign
subsidiary. They are more familiar with corporate culture, enhancing parent-subsidiary relations.
Assigning expatriates to foreign posts is an essential ingredient of their management development
programme and their progress toward becoming an international manager.
Despite these advantages of using the expatriates for the international assignments, there are a
number of factors that contribute to expatriate success or failure. There has been considerable
research that has attempted to identify factors that may moderate performance and affect the
decision to stay or leave the international assignment. The primary intention has been to link
reasons for early recall to predictors of success and thereby generate selection criteria that may
assist multinationals in their staffing decisions.
Source: http://cws.cengage.co.uk/dowling5/students/sample%20chapters/31017_05_Ch05_p109-
136.pdf
Notes While the focus has predominately been on cross-cultural adjustment, other factors have also
been identified, as depicted in the figure above. The importance of family considerations in
cultural acculturation is also important factor determining the success of the expatriate.
Factors can be broadly grouped under two heads affecting the success of expatriates, such as;
general factors and specific attributes. General factors deals with the job-related factor while
specific attributes refers to the technical skills and attributes.
Inability to adjust to the foreign culture: This factor has been a consistent reason given for
expatriate failure and has been the subject of considerable interest to researchers. The ‘inability
of the spouse to adjust’ to foreign environment has also been recognised as a significant reason.
Let us understand the model described below.
In recent years international human resource scholars have developed theoretical models that
help explain the factors involved in effectively adjusting to overseas assignments.
There are two major types of adjustments that an expatriate must make when going on an
overseas assignment. One is the anticipatory adjustment which is carried out before the expatriate
leaves for the assignment. The other is the in-country adjustment which takes place on-site.
Anticipatory adjustment is influenced by several important factors. One individual factor is the
pre-departure training that is provided. Other is the previous experience the expatriate may
have had with the assigned country or similar cultures. These two factors help determine the
accuracy of the expatriate’s expectations.
Once on-site, there are a number of factors that will influence ability to adjust effectively. These
include:
1. His ability to maintain a positive outlook in the face of high pressure, to interact with host
nationals, and to correctly perceive and evaluate the host countries values a norm.
Notes
Figure 5.3: A Theoretical Model for Expatriate Adjustment
ä
ä
Mode of Adjustment
ää
Job
(1) Role clarity Degree of Adjustment
ä
Anticipatory
Adjustment ä (1) Role discretion 1. Work adjustment
(1) Role novelty
2. Interaction adjustment
ä (1) Role conflict ä 3. General adjustment
ä
Organisation
ä
Organisation
Culture Non-work
(Numbers in parentheses indicate the numbered facet(s) of adjustment to which the specific
variable is expected to relate.)
2. The job factor itself as reflected by the role the expatriate plays in managing the host
country’s management team, the authority he/she has to make the decisions, the new
ambience of work-related challenges and the amount of role-conflict that exists.
3. Organisational culture and how easily the expatriate can adjust to it.
4. The non-work factors such as the toughness with which the expatriate can adjust to the
rigours of the new cultural experience and how well his or her family can adjust to the
rigours of the new assignment.
5. Effective socialisation tactics, to know ‘what is what’ and ‘who is who’ in the host’s
organisation.
These anticipatory and in-country factors will influence the expatriate’s mode and degree of
adjustment to an overseas assignment. This explains why effective selection is so important and
difficult.
Length of assignment: There is some evidence that length of assignment does contribute to
adjustment and performance. A longer assignment allows the expatriate more time to adjust to
the foreign situation and become productive.
Example: Japanese firms often do not expect the expatriate to perform up to full capacity
until the third year; the first year of the foreign assignment is seen mainly as a period of
adjustment to the foreign environment.
Example: The reasons for lower British expatriate failure rates were that British managers
were more internationally mobile than US managers, and that perhaps British companies had
developed more effective expatriate policies.
Work environment-related factors: Adjustment to the work role itself was negatively associated
with ‘intent to stay’. Support for these factors as moderators has come from a study by Shaffer
et al. of expatriates working in ten US multinationals. Job autonomy is also a powerful factor
influencing expatriate turnover.
Another moderator is the perceived level of organisational support – from home as well as from
the host unit. Further, once the expatriate has mastered, or nearly completed, the assigned work,
other factors may surface and assume relative importance. For instance, if the work becomes
less demanding and no longer so time-consuming, the expatriate may have time to pay more
attention to negative cross-cultural experiences that the family is encountering. These negative
experiences can become distorted when combined with lack of challenge at work and thus sow
seeds for early recall, or under-performance.
Expatriate failure is the premature return of an expatriate (that is, a return home before the
period of assignment is completed). In such a case, an expatriate failure represents a selection
error, often compounded by ineffective expatriate management policies. There is almost no
empirical foundation for the existence of high failure rates when measured as premature
re-entry. The expatriate failure is associated with the costs.
Direct costs include airfares and associated relocation expenses and salary and training. The
precise amount varies according to the level of the position concerned, country of destination,
exchange rates and whether the ‘failed’ manager is replaced by another expatriate. Many expatriate
positions involve contact with host government officials and key clients. Failure at this level
may result in loss of market share, difficulties with host-government officials and demands that
expatriates be replaced with HCNs.
Failure has an effect on the expatriate concerned who may lose self-esteem, self-confidence, and
prestige among peers. Future performance may be marked by decreased motivation, lack of
promotional opportunities or even increased productivity to compensate for the failure. Finally,
the expatriate’s family relationships may be threatened.
Notes Below are mentioned various reasons that had been identified for the U.S. expatriate
failure:
Contd...
2. Career Problems: A foreign posting creates, for the expatriate, a number of career Notes
threats, being “out-of-sight, out-of-mind” and being passed over for promotion, the
danger of coming home a ‘stranger’ with few familiar faces among the greeters, the
possibility of being seduced by a foreign lifestyle and losing the desire to return.
3. Income Gaps: Income gaps can occur when compensation does not match the position
or the high cost of living overseas.
The key variables that influence the outcome of a successful expatriate assignment from the
initial personal inputs of a particular desire for an international career along with capabilities
which may influence eventual personal success and the corporate inputs of the strategies of
internationalisation and international operations. Those personal propensities and abilities
will act on a person’s willingness as well as his own perceived suitability, to submit to a
selection process of a particular nature. This might be to a longer-term commitment to an
international ‘pool’ of high-flyers, or simply a one-off job.
On the company’s part, the nature of selection will be dependent on the international strategy.
This is closely bound up with the level of integration of expatriation in the organisation’s
operating strategy, as reflected in the nature of expatriation as a one-off assignment, part of a
management development process that may partly be ad hoc, but where an overseas assignment
is seen as part of developing general management capabilities, or an integral part of building a
pool of high-flyers who can undertake assignments anywhere in the world.
Notes Once selected, and as a result of the corporate factors, the nature of integration into the
management development process of expatriation may be continuous and progressive, it may
be ad hoc. Or a foreign assignment may simply be a one-off decision which may have more to
do with immediate corporate needs rather than management development. Decisions by the
individual to submit to these ‘different processes’ and to make career decisions at any stage may
be influenced by cultural factors.
The nature of the management development process will reflect these factors so that assignments
seen as a progressive facet of development will require a more continuous process of training
and development. It is unlikely that one-off, culture-specific training will yield the high degree
of acculturation that may be needed in assignments with high relationship requirements. Ongoing
development within a ‘pool’ is more likely to produce individuals who are highly adaptive
across cultures.
These could involve withdrawing from international assignments (and/or the management
development process), going ‘native’ (that is, staying in the country of the assignment because
of personal embededness within the local culture or environment), or exiting the existing
company to pursue other career choices. Any of these choices may impact on the medium to
longer-term success to the corporation (for example, losing individuals from the ‘pool’).
Task As an HR of the company, chart out the responsibilities to deal with the high failure
rate of expatriates.
Self Assessment
16. Inability to adjust to foreign culture is a factor that moderates the performance of expatriates.
17. A longer assignment allows the expatriate more time to adjust to the foreign situation and
become productive.
Accepting the international assignment will impact upon the career of the potential candidate’s
spouse or partner. The increase in the number of dual-career couples is a worldwide trend, one
that is posing a dilemma for both companies and employees alike. Fewer U.S. employees are
willing to relocate, either domestically or internationally, without the support of their spouses,
to the extent that the career-couple challenge is now an issue that multinational employers
cannot ignore.
The majority of companies (86%) admitted they had turned down assignment offers. The main
reasons for refusals were domestic/family concerns (77%) and dual-career issues (58%). Reflecting
this global trend, the impact of the accompanying spouse’s or partner’s career orientation upon
the international assignment is an emerging area where career orientation not only affects the Notes
couple’s willingness to move but negatively affects performance and retention in the foreign
location.
Most companies use informal or ad hoc approaches to addressing the problems of their expatriate
career couples. In isolation or with industry colleagues, companies are beginning to generate
innovative programmes and interventions to assist this special breed of couples. Strategies
multinationals have experimented with include:
4. Support of “commuter marriages”: The spouse/partner may decide to remain in the home
country, and the couple works out ways to maintain the relationship with the help of the
firm. When a major U.S. multinational assigned a female expatriate to its Australian
subsidiary for 18 months, her husband remained in Chicago. The multinational supported
this arrangement through subsidised telephone bills and three return airline tickets.
Many multinationals are concerned with the various social norms with regard to women, which
prevail in many countries. For example, some Middle Eastern countries would not issue a work
visa to a female expatriate even if the multinational selected her. In many countries, social
norms regarding the role of women do not apply to female expatriates because locals regard
them as foreigners. This did appear to be the situation for female members of the U.S. armed
forces station in Saudi Arabia during the Gulf War.
Men in some cultures, such as certain Asian countries, do not like reporting to female managers,
particularly foreign women, and therefore women should not be posted abroad. Such beliefs
help create what has been termed the glass border that supports the glass ceiling.
There is no question that women receive fewer opportunities for overseas postings, and what
foreign assignments they get are usually short ones, with two-week projects being most common
for women. A study by Adler (1984) reported that only 3% of U.S. expatriates were women. This
shortage of women expatriates is found to exist because:
(1) U.S. MNC executives believe that women are ineffective, unqualified, and uninterested in
foreign assignments;
Notes (3) foreign prejudices against women would tend to make them ineffective. Adler refutes the
first argument, finding no difference between male and female MBA graduates with respect
to their attitudes toward overseas assignments. She found validity to the second point,
citing reasons such as the prejudices of foreigners, dual-career families, and concerns over
the potential danger inherent in some overseas postings. She also found support for
foreign prejudices that would make women less effective—especially in Middle Eastern
nations.
In 1989, six years after Alder’s study, a survey by Moran Stahl and Boyer Inc. reported (Solmon,
1989) that women received 5% of U.S. expatriate assignments, but 80% of the respondents noted
the following disadvantages to posting women in foreign lands:
(2) men must be assigned in many locales to provide the required conservative corporate
image; and
(3) it is unreasonable to send women into some countries, such as Pakistan or Saudi Arabia.
Although there is paucity of research on the subject, it appears that women are making
some gains in the expatriate area, but significant improvements are constrained by moderate
prejudice at home and cases of extreme prejudice abroad. Even in places such as the U.S.,
where women are becoming more accepted at the workplace, the pay gap between male
and female workers still exists (Fortune, 1994).
Although Indian women have a track record holding important political positions, too
few have achieved similar success in ranks of business management. Progress in this area
is still held back by traditional beliefs that women are second class citizens whose place is
in the home. Too many Indian women deny themselves opportunities simply because
they have no interest in managerial careers. However, as more women excel in politics
and in elected offices, their acceptance and interest in corporate boardrooms are increasing
gradually.
Task Taking the example of HSBC explain the steps taken by the organisation to deal
with the problem of dual career role.
Self Assessment
18. Multinational never assists spouse or partner assistance with the employment search in
the host country.
19. MNCs may send the couple to the same foreign facility, this is called Intra-company
employment.
Notes
Case Study IHR Policies at SCA
A
lthough SCA’s history dates back to a number of 1700th century companies its
present history did not start until 1929 when the company was incorporated as a
holding company for some ten forest companies producing sawn goods and
paper pulps in northern Sweden. Today SCA has developed into a global consumer goods
and paper company that develops, produces and markets personal care products, tissues,
packaging solutions, publication papers and solid-wood products with an annual turnover
of 96 385 million SEK. SCA has about 51,000 employees in some 50 countries around the
globe. The workforce is mainly, situated in Sweden, Germany, UK and US. Each of those
countries has approximately 5000–6500 employees.
SCA ensures that host country operations conform both to the country’s status and the
company’s status. Although, the decentralised characteristic of the organisation SCA still
work very closely with other business units around the world. Therefore it is a common
case that employees at different levels of the organisation will meet and interact with
employees from other countries. As a result employees will learn how to do things outside
of their own perspective. SCA provides with a lot of opportunities to go abroad to work
and the employees feel that they can make a difference since it is an environment open for
changes. SCA’s code of conduct is based upon the core values of Respect, Excellence and
Responsibility, which brings together a set of universal standards that indicate what SCA
expects of its businesses and employees regardless of location or background. However,
these standards are not entirely new as they update revise and summarise in one convenient
place many of the policies and principles SCA has remained over several years.
Facilitating Adjustment
The factor of role is not regarded as decisive for work adjustment by Mr. Gatenheim as he
claims that an expatriate manager does not behave any differently in the host-country
than he would in the home-country. The style of leadership is connected to a person’s
personality and is for that reason difficult to change. In addition, it is not expected by the
expatriate to behave in any particular way as long as he/she conforms to the ethical codes
of a country and that he/she appear as an excellent representative of SCA. Role discretion is
not considered of high importance for expatriates during an assignment. However, the
company puts emphasis on expatriate managers to be aware of the fact that employees
from different countries perceive managers differently. Mr. Gatenheim explains that an
expatriate manager whose style of leadership does not correlate with the local circumstances
risks to be replaced. SCA provides the expatriate with the necessary support needed to
facilitate adjustment. However, it is important to have in mind that they do not receive
any other additional support compared to employees in the home-country. Mr. Gatenheim
states that there are no formal support strategies between co-workers and expatriates.
However, SCA develops social networks with the purpose of creating a forum for expatriates
and their families to ventilate and reflect with others in the same situation. The organisation
brings together expatriates from the same nationality or origin in order for them to
remain their familiar social bounds. Although the social support from co-worker is an
important aspect for facilitating adjustment, the company claims that the most important
relationship is the superior co-worker relationship.
Local managers brief the employee so that he/she will have a chance to become familiar
with his/her workplace. The introduction introduces the employee to the organisation,
Contd...
Notes he/she will soon gain good overall picture of the organisation as they are presented with
the product, its way of producing, marketing, the organisation etc. The employee is also
presented with the organisation’s values and policies. Moreover, the organisational culture
of SCA is distinguished by care and compassion for the employee and there is always
someone who you can talk to when difficulties arise. In addition, relocation firms are
hired when the expatriate arrive to his/her destination with the purpose of providing
logistical support by managing all the practical aspects of moving to another country. This
is done in order to facilitate adjustment at a much faster pace, so that the expatriate can
focus on his/her work immediately instead of arranging the new place of living Mr.
Gatenheim explains that although the organisation is relatively decentralised the
organisational culture remains the same and as a result expatriates are not experiencing any
difficulties of adjusting to the new workplace. However, in newly acquired businesses it
could be difficult for managers of the original company to adjust to the new organisational
culture as the new control makes them feel uncomfortable. In many instances the
organisation eventually has to dismiss the manager in order to make the transition
successful. Managers in minor companies can often remain in office for a while but in the
long run it becomes difficult for them to adjust and they are eventually dismissed. The
expatriation strategies of SCA are no different for an employee of higher rank or someone
with different work tasks.
All contracts and policies are handled from Sweden in order to ensure that everyone is
treated equally. It is noticeable that the whole process becomes more effortlessly the more
often people move as they learn how to manage changes. The reality is that the majority
of the expatriates who leaves the home country for a mission abroad advance in their
career by moving on with other tasks in other countries. However, the expatriate’s
compensation is to some extent affected by his/her origin, but that will be further discussed
in the compensation section. SCA is aware of the fact that in order for an expatriate to be
successful in his/her new environment support to the family is an important factor. For that
reason SCA has developed a well thought out strategy for supporting the family both
financially and logistically. The families are handed a pension plan and employment
when it is possible. However, a majority of the spouses, mostly women, do not want the
company to find them a job in the new country. Mr. Gatenheim explains that 92 percents
of the expatriates are from countries outside Sweden and for them it is not as common that
the wife has a career of her own, she prefers to stay at home taking care of the family. In
some locations it is very difficult to find a suitable job for the spouse a fact that obviously
becomes complicated for the dual-career couple. Furthermore, Mr. Gatenheim states that
the company compensate its expatriates costs for education and day-care. Sometimes
candidates turn down an opportunity to work abroad since they do not believe that their
family will enjoy it there. However, that is very unusual and those cases are most often
linked to expatriates being placed in developing countries. Concerning what individual
characteristics that are determining for an expatriate’s adjustment the respondent states
that self-awareness is a key for a successful assignment. Flexibility is another aspect regarded
important by Mr. Gatenheim. These aspects are tested carefully before an expatriate is
selected.
Mr. Gatenheim further explains that the expatriates who are sent on foreign assignments
always has the qualities of being a good worker and competent in the field of finance or
engineering. Another aspect that SCA considers important is language as the company
claims that employees with operative tasks must master the language, especially from a
safety perspective. However, when it comes to more demanding positions such as specialist
or international consultants then the shared and most accepted language is English.
Contd...
Question Notes
Source: http://epubl.ltu.se/1402-1552/2007/005/LTU-DUPP-07005-SE.pdf
5.6 Summary
In the human resource cycle, recruitment and selection process are the main variables
influencing directly the ‘performance’ as also the ‘employee development processes’.
Recruitment is defined as the process of identifying and attracting the potential candidate
from within and outside an organisation to begin evaluating them for future employment.
The four generic processes: selection, performance appraisal, rewards management and
human resource development reflect sequential managerial tasks.
There are various issues which have to be taken care before selecting the expatriates for an
international assignment.
Indian women have a track record holding important political positions too few have
achieved similar success in ranks of business management like Indira Nooyi, Kiran
Majhumdar, Chanda Kocchar, etc.
Selection is the process by which the organisation chooses from among the applicants,
those people who are perceived the best meet the job requirements.
5.7 Keywords
Culture: It is a set of the set of shared attitudes, values, goals, and practices that characterises an
institution, organisation or group.
Internal Recruitment: Candidates are from the organisation itself. Source of internal recruitment
is promotion from within, job posting and employee referrals.
Notes Selection: It is the process of choosing the best applicant among the pool of the applicants.
1. Being the HR of the company, justify the use of PCN, TCN and HCN (various nationality
groups) in selecting managers for the international assignments.
3. Critically examine the factors that lead to the failures of the expatriates in the international
assignments.
4. Explain the theoretical mode developed to explain the factors involved in effectively
adjusting to overseas assignments.
5. What factors do you think plays a dominant role in failure of the expatriates?
6. Analyse the general and specific factors contributing to the success of expatriates.
7. Critically examine the factors that lead to the modification of the expatriate performance
in international assignments.
8. Outline the reasons for the shortage of the women expatriates in international assignments.
Justify giving examples.
10. How recruitment and selection process in international assignment affects the performance
of the expatriates? Justify giving examples.
1. Attracts 2. Planning
3. Referrals 4. Ethnocentric
5. Geocentric 6. Experiences
7. Host 8. HCNs
9. Selection 10. Ethic
19. True
Ashwathappa, K. and Dash, S. (2008). International HRM. Tata McGraw Hill. Notes
Publishing Company Limited.
http://epubl.ltu.se/1402-1552/2007/005/LTU-DUPP-07005-SE.pdf
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
6.1 Repatriation
6.4 Summary
6.5 Keywords
Objectives
Explain the social factors, including family factors that affect re-entry and work adjustment
Introduction
There have been considerable advances in our understanding and knowledge of the issues
surrounding the management and support of expatriates in international assignments.
Expatriation process also includes repatriation. It is the activity of bringing the expatriate back
to the home country. Managers understand repatriation needs careful managing the people
returning back to their hone country. For returning expatriates, re-entry typically is associated
with a great deal of emotion. Sadness, excitement, and trepidation are mixed together. Expectations
of a smooth resettlement often lead the way.
6.1 Repatriation
The central tenet of an individual’s re-entry challenge is psychological. The word “re-entry”
implies going back, returning to something that is known from prior experience. But to what?
Perhaps to the broad fabric of one’s home country, the actual home or neighbourhood one lived
in before the international assignment, or the lives of friends and family, or a school system.
1. Although people and places change, relationships that were once vital will continue to be
so;
2. Family and friends will be as eager and excited to hear about their adventures as they are
to speak about them;
3. Activities and/or job responsibilities that inspired them before they left will continue to
do so;
4. They will feel relaxed, at ease, and “at home” because they are once again in a familiar
cultural and physical environment; and
5. Their broader perspective on life, abilities to deal effectively with diversity, and their
understanding of the global nature of the human condition will be acknowledged and
valued.
The actual experience of return proves, however, that to varying degrees all of the above
assumptions are false.
Returnees often are surprised to experience a re-entry cycle similar in form, but often more
intense, to the one they encountered during their experience abroad, this is termed as Re-entry
Shock. Intercultural practitioners know that professional integration is a key during repatriation.
Issues of career development and job effectiveness have been in the limelight of re-entry training.
Career advancement often is cited as a major reason for accepting an international assignment.
It follows that expatriate returnees wish to be kept abreast of changes in the home office. They
want to stay closely in communication with the major players while they are away, and they are
concerned about the timing of and their job responsibilities on return.
The perception of having job responsibilities that are a “good fit” with capabilities developed
overseas has an important influence on the employee. This may be rated as more important than
a salary increase in contributing to repatriates’ satisfaction with the new domestic assignment.
Finding such a good fit is complicated by several factors, one of which is the expectation of
colleagues who have not been abroad.
On completion of the foreign assignment, the multinational brings the expatriate back to the
home country. But all international assignments do not end with a transfer home–rather; the
expatriate is re-assigned to another international post. Expatriation and repatriation are
interrelated.
Re-entry into the home country presents new challenges as the repatriate (returning person)
copes with re-entry shock, or reverse culture shock. While people frequently expect life in a new
country to be different, they may be less prepaid for homecoming to present problems of
adjustment. As a consequence, it can be a traumatic experience for some even more than what
was encountered in the foreign location. From the multinational’s perspective, repatriation is
Notes frequently considered as the final stage in the expatriation process but the multinational’s
ability to attract future expatriates is affected by the manner in which it handles repatriation.
Some expatriates may agree to become part of the multinational’s international team of managers,
and thus have consecutive international assignments. But at some point, members of this
international team or cadre will face repatriation, so there are different concerns that need to be
addressed.
1. Preparation involves developing plans for the future and gathering information about
the new position. The firm may provide a checklist of items to be considered before the
return home (e.g., closure of bank accounts and settings bills) or a thorough preparation of
employee and family for the transfer home.
2. Physical relocation refers to removing personal effects, breaking ties with colleagues and
friends, and travelling to the next posting, usually the home country. Most multinationals
use removal firms or relocation consultants to handle the physical relocation, both for the
movement out and the return home of the employee and family, and this may be formalised
in their HR policies. Comprehensive and personalised relocations assistance reduces the
amount of uncertainty, stress, and disruption experienced by the repatriate and family.
4. Readjustment involves coping with reverse culture shock and career demands. This phase
seems to be the least understood and most poorly handled.
Preparation
Physical
Relocation
Repatriation
Transition Process
Readjustment
The re-entry process is a complex interaction of several factors and grouped the major factors
under two headings: Job-related Factors and Social Factors.
(a) Career Anxiety: Expatriates are motivated to accept an international assignment due Notes
to career advancement and financial gain. The prime factor in re-entry is career
anxiety. This can emerge prior to the physical relocation and can affect productivity
during the last couple of months of the international assignment as the person
contemplates the re-entry process. The causes for career anxiety are:
(ii) Fear of out of sight, out of mind: It is the fear associated with the expatriate
that the period overseas has caused a loss of visibility and isolation, which
brood over the end of the international assignment as the person begins to
consider the re-entry process and depends on various elements: the amount of
contact that the person has had with the home organisation, the position level
concerned and whether the person is aware well in advance of the type of re-
entry job awaiting in the home country. Lack of information may increase the
level of anxiety, leaving the person with a decided impression that the company
has not planned adequately. If there is no post-assignment job guarantee, the
anxiety level will be exceptionally high.
(b) Work adjustment: Work adjustment has an important impact on a person’s intent to
stay with the organisation. Career anxiety is the moderating factor but others may
lead to readjustment problems. They are:
(c) Coping with new role demands: Re-entry poses a challenge for the repatriate and
frequently reveals a mismatch of expectations which affect the repatriate’s perception
of the new role, especially if an anticipated promotion doesn’t materialise. Effective
role behaviour is an interaction between the concept of the role, the interpretation
of the expectations, the person’s ambitions, and the norms inherent in the role.
The elements of the repatriate’s role as a focus for a discussion of the readjustment
issues related to role behaviour are shown in the Figure 6.3:
Notes
Figure 6.3: The Repatriate Role
Corporate Boundary
s
s
Cultural Boundary
s
Foreign Role
s
Subsidiary Conception
The period abroad does alter the person. The experiences of living and working in
another country can after the person’s self-efficacy. The expatriate position commonly
involves a more demanding job position. Learning how to successfully cope with
the various challenges encountered during the foreign assignment may give the
person more self-confidence, along with a broader perspective. These changes may
be subtle for some people, for others they can be profound – and are influenced by
factors such as length of time spent abroad, country of assignment, and individual
differences such as age and personality. The re-entry shock experienced by the
repatriate may be as much a function of the degree to which the person has altered.
societal changes
considered
‘new’ person
emerges
Family adjustment
The repatriate encounters changes in the formal and informal information channels
in the home organisation, particularly if there has been widespread restructuring
and downsizing. Technological advances in the multinational may render the
repatriate’s functional skills and knowledge out dated. When coupled with other
job-related problems, these changes make work adjustment a difficult process.
(d) Loss of status and pay: The international assignment is a form of promotion. It carries
greater autonomy, a broader area of responsibility and, at the top management
level, a prominent role in the local community. The result is higher status. Some
expatriates use the term kingpin to describe their positions abroad. Upon return, the
repatriate is expected to resume his position within the home company – with the
Notes loss of status and autonomy. So, the repatriate is treated as just another company
executive. This shift may cause readjustment problems.
The returning manager is no longer able to afford to buy a home similar to the one
sold a few years before. Providing expatriate with better housing than they had at
home may contribute to repatriation problems. This creates somewhat of a dilemma
for US - HR managers. A drop in the standard of housing conditions has a negative
impact on the adjustment of U.S. repatriates.
2. Social Factors: The familiar surroundings of the home environment eases the transition
or at least the cultural adjustment will not be as demanding as that confronted in the
foreign country. International experience can distance the repatriate, and his family, socially
and psychologically. If the expatriate position gave the person a high profile, involving
interaction with the social and economic elite, the return home may bring with it some
measure of social disappointment, thus reinforcing the kingpin syndrome.
Where spouses, partners, and children are involved, each family member is experiencing
his own readjustment problems. As a coping behaviour in the foreign location, others
may have glamourized life back home. Life at home may now seem dull and unexciting,
and the family may begin to glamourize the life they left behind in the foreign location.
These reactions can be compounded if the family income has been reduced upon
repatriation. Impressions generated about changes in the home country may depend on
how effectively the family has been able to keep up-to-date with events back home.
Re-establishing social networks can be difficult, especially if the family has been repatriated
to a different state or town in the home country. Families who return to their previous
domestic locations often find that friends have moved away. Children may find re-entry
difficult. Coming back to school, attempting to regain acceptance into peer groups, and
being out-of-touch with current slang, sports, and fashion can cause problems.
Notes
Caselet Happy to be going Home
A
US family, from the mid-west, was posted to Melbourne, Australia. The expatriate’s
role was to assist the Australian subsidiary improve its quality control and supplier
relationships. Chuck was placed in charge of the purchasing department. After 12
months, he had successfully established good links with the company’s key component
suppliers and was in the process of arranging joint company quality training programmes
with these suppliers to ensure the newly-instigated just-in-time inventory procedure was
on a sound footing. Chuck was enjoying his new role. Meanwhile, his 10-year-old daughter
was finding it difficult to make friends in the expensive private school the company had
arranged for her to attend. His wife was also finding life in Australia somewhat hard to
cope with. “On the surface, it seems so much like home, but Australians are not at all the
same as us Americans, and some people make disparaging remarks about us. They use
terms such as ‘Yanks’. I miss not being able to find familiar things, such as brownie mix, in
the supermarket.” Both wife and daughter were very happy when circumstances provide
an acceptable reason for an early end to Chuck’s assignment. His elderly mother suffered
a bad fall, and there were no other family members to take care of her. The family was
repatriated after 14 months into a 3-years assignment. The expatriate was replaced by
another PCN.
Self Assessment
1. ……….. is returning to one’s home country, the actual home one lived in before the
international assignment.
2. Issues of career ………. and job effectiveness has been in the limelight of re-entry training.
5. The familiar surroundings of the home environment ease the transition or at least the
cultural ………. is not as demanding as that confronted in the foreign country.
1. Staff Availability: The way in which the multinational handles repatriation has an impact
on staff availability for future needs. Re-entry positions signal the importance given to
international experience. If the repatriate is promoted or given a position that obviously
capitalises on international experience, other members of the multinational interpret
international as a positive career move.
Notes If the multinational does not reward expatriate performance, tolerates a high turnover
among repatriates or is seen to terminate a repatriate’s employment upon re-entry, then
the workforce may interpret the acceptance of an international assignment as a high-risk
decision in terms of future career progression within the organisation. The multinational’s
ability to attract high-calibre staff for international assignments is thereby lessened, and
this can have a negative effect on the multinational’s activities in the long-term.
Example: US multinational spends around one million dollars on each expatriate over
the duration of a foreign assignment. And if approximately one in four repatriates exits the firm
within 1 year of repatriation, it is a substantial financial and human capital loss to the firm,
especially if the skills, knowledge, and experience that the individual gains are important to the
firm and scarce in the internal or external labour markets.
Getting a return on this investment would appear to be an important objective, but not
easy to achieve. ROI concentrates on the international assignment period, and can be
substituted by a cost-benefit analysis to justify a decision to replace expatriates with
HCNs, rather than considering gains that accrue to the organisation through repatriated
staff.
Given the roles played by expatriates, along with their cost, it is reasonable to expect that
multinationals would endeavour to retain key staff and to extract and build upon their
international experience.
3. Any transfer of knowledge and competence occurs there in the host location, and remains
there. Expatriates return to their home base and are reassigned or resign.
4. While performing their tasks in the host location, expatriates develop skills and gain
experience, knowledge and network relationships that can then be used upon repatriation
in some way or another.
Example: A project manager working in Russia can report, on re-entry to his UK home
base, technical problems encountered and solutions that were developed to overcome these
problems, thus sharing the experience. However, not all of the knowledge about that project is
explicit. Much will remain tacit and person-bound. What is codified and made explicit often is
retained could be applicable to other projects or types of business concerning Russia, such as
important contacts, management styles and some technical solutions.
Notes
Notes The trend towards not providing post-assignment position guarantee suggests that
multinationals accept loss of experience, knowledge and competence; that repatriates
effectively forced to leave the organisation will take with them the vital and valuable
knowledge, allowing competing firms to reap the benefits of a substantial investment in
human capital.
Self Assessment
6. ………. is the way in which the multinational handles repatriation has an impact on staff
availability for future needs.
7. Organisations need to make sure that their business ……… are supported by sound
mobility strategies.
While there is no simple and quick solution needed to prepare the repatriate and family for re-
entry. The potential for mismatch of expectations regarding the future may be addressed as part
of pre-repatriation training before the return, and discussed during re-entry counselling sessions
(sometimes referred to as debriefing) between the receiving organisation in the home country
and the repatriate.
1. Preparing, physical relocation, and transition information, what the company will help
with.
2. Financial and tax assistance, including benefit and tax changes, loss of overseas allowance.
3. Re-entry position and career path assistance.
Mentoring: Some companies assign the expatriate a mentor (also referred to as a company
contact, sponsor, or ‘godfather’). The mentor is usually in a more senior position than the
expatriate, from the sending work unit, and knows the expatriate personally. The rationale
behind the use of a mentor is to alleviate the “out-of-sight, out-of-mind” feeling. So that the
expatriate is more prepared for conditions faced upon re-entry. A mentor should also ensure
that the expatriate is not forgotten when important decisions are made regarding positions,
promotions and so on.
Notes
Notes The practice of mentoring has to be managed effectively. Mentor assists the
expatriate adjust during the foreign assignment but does not necessarily help in re-entry.
An effective mentor is likely to alert the firm of the imminent return of the repatriate and
thus affect the re-entry position, or the practice is part of a managed repatriation programme.
Example: AT&T has an effective three part repatriation program one that actually starts
before the employee leaves for the assignment abroad. First AT&T matches the expat and his or
her family with psychologists trained in repatriation issues. The psychologists meet with the
family before they go abroad. The psychologists discusses the challenges they will face abroad,
assesses with them how well he or she think they will adapt to their new culture and stays in
touch with them throughout their assignment. Other firms, like Dow, also provide written
repatriation agreements. These guarantee in writing that the company won’t keep the expat
abroad for more than some period, such as three years, and that on return he or she will receive
a mutually acceptable job.
Second AT&T makes sure that the employees always feels that he or she is still in the top with
what’s happening back at the home office. For example, AT&T assigns the expat a mentor and
brings the expat back to the home office periodically for meetings and to socialise with his or
her colleagues.
Third, once it’s time for the expat employee and his or her family to return home, AT&T provides
formal repatriation services. About six months before the overseas assignments ends, the
psychologist and HR representatives meet with the expat and the family, to start preparing
them for the return. For example the help plan the employer’s next career move, help the person
update his or her resume and begin putting the person in contact with supervisors back home.
They work with the person’s family on the logistics of the move back home. Then, about a
month after returning home, the expat and family attend a welcome home seminar where they
discuss matters like the stress of repatriation.
Did u know? Readjustment is the least understood and most poorly handled.
10. Re-entry position and career path assistance is not the part of formal repatriation
programme.
13. An effective mentor is likely to alert the firm of the imminent return of the repatriate and
thus affect the re-entry position.
15. Financial and tax assistance, including benefit and tax changes, loss of overseas allowance
are also dealt in the repatriation program.
Task Take the example of GE Money, and design a repatriate programme for the
organisations employees who are returning to India after a year’s assignment.
Case Study Re-entry Problems
J
ohn Handel had been back in his hometown for two months after an exciting three
years working in the Japanese subsidiary of a U.S. multinational. As he sat in his
empty office looking out at the city skyline, John reviewed his situation. Well, he had
to admit, for him it had been on exciting and challenging time since his position there as
finance manager had been a promotion. More importantly, it had brought him in control
with different work approaches and procedures and he had interacted with American
expatriates from headquarters as well as the local Japanese. Even though his previous
position had been in the Asia Pacific Regional Office, it had not provided him with the
same exposure as he enjoyed in Japan. John knew that he had gained valuable experience
and self-confidence as a result.
It had not been all excitement though for the family. Anne, his wife, did not complain but
John knew that she faced a difficult time because of his international assignment. One
reason was because his two teenage children had to attend the International School located
at a considerable distance from the Japanese subsidiary, which meant they only came
‘home’ on weekends. It made life particularly lonely for Anne, who was not working in
Japan. She did admit that she often missed her work as a pathologist. Anne was having
trouble back home finding employment — her previous department in a local medical
school had been closed down due to reduced government funding.
Both children enjoyed the international environment at the school, and had adjusted
better than John had hoped. Coming back to Australia though was proving to be traumatic.
His elder son had not been accepted into his chosen university course due to
Contd...
Notes non-recognition of the accreditation of the International School—or at least that was what
Peter claimed. His younger son, John knew. How was he going to explain that the family
had made sacrifices to further his career that was now going nowhere? His repatriated
position back to the Regional Office was badly timed, to say the least. Headquarters in the
state had decided to reorganise the entire global operation and, as a result, the Regional
Office was to be upgraded to a Regional Headquarters, and relocated in Japan. John knew
that it made sound business sense–most of the Asian-Pacific activity was centred on the
Japanese facility and its South-East Asian and Chinese markets.
Questions
1. Why did John felt that he gained valuable experience in the Japanese Subsidiary of
US MNC?
2. Why did John’s felt that his wife faced difficult times during his foreign assignment?
3. What type of problems did John’s children face after coming ‘home’?
4. John thought that “my acceptance of the international assignment has been career
suicide” – why?
Source: P. L. Rao, International Human Resource Management. First Edition. Excel Books. New Delhi.
6.4 Summary
After the completion of the international assignment, company brings the expatriates
back to the home-country.
The job-related and social factors make the re-entry process more complex.
HR should design the proper repatriation programme for the expatriates to avoid
complexity after re-entry.
6.5 Keywords
Knowledge Transfer: It is the cross-fertilisation of the ideas and practices by expatriates in one
country with the employees in other country.
Physical Relocation: It refers to removing personal effects, breaking ties with colleagues and Notes
friends, and travelling to the next posting.
Preparation: It is the process of developing the plans for the future and gathering the information
about the new positions.
Re-entry Shock: Returnees often are surprised to experience a re-entry cycle similar in form, but
often more intense, to the one they encountered during their experience abroad.
Repatriation: It is the process of coming back of the expatriate after the completion of the
international assignments.
Self-efficacy: It is the degree to which an individual believes that he can execute a set of behaviours.
1. Imagine yourself as the expatriate manager who is about to re-enter the home country in
one month. Explain the factors that will have a detrimental effect on your career after
coming to home country.
2. Elucidate the role of job related factors and social factors in the re-entry process of
expatriates.
4. “It seems important to understand why re-entry is a problem”. Justify this statement.
5. Being the HR of a company, analyse the important aspects that should be included in
designing the repatriation programme.
6. “The aims of cross-fertilisation of ideas and best practices given to justify cross-border
movement of staff require the right environment to facilitate sharing of information and
knowledge.” Do you agree? Justify.
7. Justify the statement “The way in which the multinational handles repatriation has an
impact on staff availability for future needs.” Give examples.
8. Critically analyse the factors that forces the expatriate to leave the MNCs on repatriation.
9. You are the HR manager of IT Company. Design a repatriation programme for your
organisation’s expatriates who will be coming to their home-country soon.
10. Analyse the challenges in the new role which the expatriate has to face on re-entry.
11. What do you think should be the role of the MNCs in managing the repatriation process?
12. “For an expatriate to stay with the organisation on re-entry, it is important for him to
adjust to the new work environment”. Do you agree? Justify.
1. Repatriation 2. Development
3. Interrelated 4. Readjustment
7. Strategies 8. Expatriates
15. True
http://www.scientificjournals.org/journals2012/articles/1521.pdf
http://www.citeman.com/11884-repatriation.html
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
7.4 Summary
7.5 Keywords
Objectives
Introduction
Training refers to the acquisition of knowledge, skills, and competencies as a result of the
teaching of vocational or practical skills and knowledge that relate to specific useful competencies.
It forms the core of apprenticeships and provides the backbone of content at institutes of
Notes technology (also known as technical colleges or polytechnics). In addition to the basic training
required for a trade, occupation or profession, observers of the labour-market recognise the
need to continue training beyond initial qualifications: to maintain, upgrade and update skills
throughout working life. People within many professions and occupations may refer to this sort
of training as professional development.
Today, more and more companies are spending substantial amounts of money on training and
development of their employees to attain long-term organisational goals. Training programmes
are designed and delivered after extensive research and preparation so as to deliver acceptable
returns on investment, and to secure sustainable competitive advantage. The management’s
philosophy of a company, whether ethnocentric, polycentric or regiocentric influences the type
of training.
Example:
1. Ethnocentric companies will provide all training at the headquarters and these will be
designed and delivered by home national’s polycentric.
2. Polycentric companies will rely on local managers to assume responsibilities for seeing
that the training function is carried out wherever appropriate.
3. Geocentric companies organise training courses in different parts of the world, where a
particular function is being best carried out.
Training has specific goals of improving one’s capability, capacity and performance. Training
aims to improve current work skills and behaviour, whereas development aims to increase
abilities in relation to some future position or job – usually managerial. Training is the process
of altering employee behaviour, attitudes and knowledge in a way that increases the probability
of individual and organisational goal attainment. It aims to improve in relation to some future
position or job, usually managerial. When expatriates are unfamiliar with the customs, cultures
and work habits of the local people, they often make critical mistakes which can be avoided by
providing them with proper training.
The cost of expatriate failure is very high. Therefore, MNCs take great pains to select the right
persons and provide them with appropriate training before their departure as well as on arrival
in a particular country. This cross-cultural and job-related training is also necessary because
multinationals have to deal with clients and suppliers from different countries and conduct
negotiations to set up joint ventures and strategies alliances and manage subsidiaries abroad.
Therefore, they invest heavily on the training of all employees, particularly on expatriates.
Proper training can enhance group decision-making skills, team work and leadership
effectiveness. Training and development is a subset of Organisational Development (OD), culture
change and knowledge management. In order to compete successfully in a global market, more Notes
firms are focusing on the role of human resources as a critical part of their core competence and
a source of competitive advantage. The importance of training and developing staff has resulted
in establishing the ‘universities’, or ‘schools’ owned by MNCs themselves. Motorola, McDonald’s
Hamburger, and Disney universities are good examples of these in-house training centres.
Recruitment
International
and Training Development ä
Source: Pick from Figure 8.1, page 97, book Global HRM- MGTD627- Semester 4- LPU
Effective cultural training assists individuals to adjust more rapidly to the new culture.
Previously MNCs placed less priority on providing pre-departure training for the spouse
and family. But as it has been established that they equally need the training and it is being
provided to them.
Self Assessment
1. Training to maintain, upgrade and update skills throughout working life is called as
professional ………..
2. Training programmes are designed and delivered after extensive research and preparation
so as to deliver acceptable ……….. on investment.
5. Proper training can enhance group decision-making skills ………. and leadership
effectiveness.
6. The importance of training and developing staff has resulted in establishing the
‘universities’, or ‘……….’ owned by MNCs themselves.
Most expatriates are selected from within the multinational’s existing operations, while some
expatriates may be hired externally. Once an employee has been selected for an expatriate
Notes position, pre-departure training is considered to be the next critical step. This is an important
attempt to ensure some cultural familiarity, especially if the expatriate’s host country is considered
culturally tough. Effective cultural training enables individuals to adjust more rapidly to the
new culture.
A large number of U.S. multinationals have been reluctant to provide even a basic level of pre-
departure training. U.S. multinationals tended to use training programmes for expatriates less
frequently than European and Japanese firms.
Caselet High Failure Rates
E
xpatriate managers, especially U.S. managers working in foreign countries,
experience very high failure rates. Black and Gregersen (1999) report the following
alarming findings:
1. Nearly one-third of U.S. managers sent abroad do not perform up to the expectations
of their superiors.
2. Up to 20 percent of all U.S. managers sent abroad return early because of job
dissatisfaction or difficulties in adjusting to a foreign country.
Perhaps, what is even more disturbing than Black and Gregersen’s findings is the fact that
we have known about these appalling failure rates for many years. In January of 1990, a
Training & Development Journal article stated, “Up to 40 percent of U.S. expatriate managers
fail in their overseas assignments” (Hogan and Goodson, 1990).
In that same article, Hogan and Goodson described how the Japanese companies had
achieved a dramatically better success rate with their expatriate managers. They discussed
one survey that stated “86 percent of multinational corporations in Japan had failure rates
below 10 percent for their expatriates.” Hogan and Goodson (1990) described the typical
Japanese firm’s expatriate support program as follows:
1. One year before managers depart, they devote company time to studying the culture
and language of the destination country.
2. In the foreign country, the expatriate managers work with mentors who are
responsible directly to the head office for assisting the managers with cultural
problems that arise.
3. The first-year performance appraisal form clearly indicates that the expatriate’s
primary job during year one is to learn about and adjust to the host country.
Question
How can the failure rate of US expatriates be converted to success rate? Suggest.
Source: http://www.drbeitler.com/freestuff/articles/Expatriate-Training.pdf
According to researchers (Harrison, 1994; Harris and Moran, 1991) training for expatriate Notes
managers must include following phases:
Self-Awareness: The self-awareness phase should be designed to provide the trainees with
insight into their receptiveness and propensity for successful cross-cultural assignments. There
are several psychological instruments available for managers and their family members, including
the Cross-Cultural Adaptability Inventory (Kelley & Meyers, 1992) and the Intercultural
Sensitivity Inventory (Bhawuk & Brislin, 1992). After completing several psychological
instruments, it may become clear to the manager (or to his/her supervisor) that overseas
assignment may not be appropriate. Jordan and Cartwright (1998) believe successful expatriate
managers have the following attributes:
1. Emotional stability
4. Relational ability
5. Linguistic skill
6. Cultural sensitivity
General Awareness of Cultural Differences: The general awareness of cultural differences phase
of training is now supported by an impressive body of literature. Kluckhohn and Strodtbeck
(1961), Hofstede (1980, 1993), and Trompenaars (1998) provide insight into how cultures differ
on various dimensions. Kluckhohn and Strodtbeck (1961) describe six different cultural
dimensions:
Bennett (1986) believes by educating individuals to recognise their own values, they can better
identify contrasts with other cultures and then apply these insights gained to improving cross-
cultural interactions. Harrison (1994) adds, “To appreciate the differences in other cultures,
trainees must understand their own culture.”
Specific Knowledge Acquisition: The specific knowledge acquisition phase includes area studies,
language studies, and host attitude awareness. Area studies, covering history, political system,
economy, demographics, and climate are assumed to increase empathy, which will modify
behaviour in cross-cultural interactions (Tung, 1981). Researchers (Copeland & Griggs, 1985;
Harris & Moran, 1991) have found knowledge of the host country’s language to be essential.
Interestingly, an individual’s level of confidence and willingness to use the host language is a
greater influence on success than his or her actual level of fluency (Mendenhall & Oddou, 1985).
Therefore, building the trainee’s confidence and willingness is critical. In this phase, it is important
for the trainee to become aware of the attitudes he or she will face in the host country. Work-
related attitudes such as productivity, dependability, pace, frequency of breaks, meeting
interruptions, and deadlines vary greatly from culture to culture. Trainees must also be alerted
to possible negative attitudes toward nationality, race, or gender.
Notes Specific Skills Training: The specific skills training phase emphasises the application and practice
of the skills necessary to succeed in the foreign culture. In this phase, “trainees analyse the
problem situation, diagnose the underlying cultural issues, and respond accordingly” (Harrison,
1994). Case studies, simulations, and behaviour modelling allow for the application and practice
of previously acquired knowledge. An effective skills training method is the simulated cocktail
party (Earley, 1987). The interactions in this simulation require the use of greetings and
introductions, etiquette, and appropriate topics for conversation. Mendenhall and Oddou (1998)
believe this type of simulation forces the trainees to deal with emotions resulting from cross-
cultural misunderstandings. Harrison (1992) describes the use of behaviour modelling as an
effective cross-cultural training tool. Managers watch live or videotaped models demonstrating
effective behaviours; then the managers rehearse the demonstrated behaviours. Trainers should
be available to provide feedback.
Example: In the Middle East, emphasis is placed on personal relationships, trust and
respect in business dealings coupled with an overriding emphasis on religion that permeates
almost every aspect of life.
There are five categories of pre-departure training, based on different learning processes, type
of job, country of assignment, and the time available:
1. Area studies programmes that include environmental briefing and cultural orientation
giving information about climate, geography, houses, etc.
5. Field experiences arranged to make the expatriate familiarise with the challenges of the
assignment.
The degree of interaction required in the host culture and the similarity between the individual’s
native culture and the new culture determines the variations in the expatriate training along
with the duration of the training.
1. If the expected interaction between the individual and members of the host culture is low
and the degree of dissimilarity between the home and host cultures is also low, then the
training should focus on task- and job-related issues rather than culture-related issues. The
level of rigour necessary for effective training should be relatively low. The duration of
training could be one to two weeks including focus on area briefing and sensitivity training.
2. If there is going to be high level of expected interaction with host nationals and large
dissimilarities exist between the cultures, then training should focus on cross-cultural
skill development as well as on the new task. The level of rigour should be moderate to Notes
high. The duration of training can extend from two weeks to two months including language
training, use of training assimilators and field experience in addition to area briefing and
sensitivity training.
Notes Mendenhall, Dunbar and Oddou proposed three dimensions – training methods,
low, medium, and the high levels of training rigour, and duration of the training relative
to degree of interaction and culture novelty – as useful guidelines for determining an
appropriate programme.
For example, If the expected level of interaction is low and the degree of similarity between
the individual’s native culture and the host culture is high, the length of the training
should probably be less than a week. Methods such as area or cultural briefings via
lectures, movies, or books would provide the appropriate level of training rigour.
If the individual is going overseas for a period of two to twelve months and is expected to
have some interaction with members of the host culture, the level of training rigour
should be higher and its length longer (one to four weeks). Also, training methods such as
culture assimilators and role plays may be appropriate.
If the individual is going to a fairly novel and different host culture and the expected
degree of interaction is high, the level of cross-cultural training rigour should be high and
training should last as long as two months. Also, sensitivity training, field experiences,
and inter-cultural experiential workshops may be appropriate training methods in this
situation.
Skills Development
Motivation self dimension
relational
Cultural
Awareness Motivation Retention Reproduction
Adjustment
and
Incentives
Performance Management
Notes The three aspects of social learning theory – attention, retention, and reproduction also influence
the individual differences in expectations and motivation and incentives to apply learned
behaviours in the foreign location. It recognises that effective training is only the first step and
that the expatriate’s willingness and ability to act on that training in the new environment is
crucial to effective performance. It stresses the importance of attention paid by the potential
expatriate to the behaviours and probable outcomes of a cultural awareness training programme,
the individual’s ability and willingness to retain learned behaviours, and their reproduction as
appropriate in the host location.
The technique of sending the employee on a preliminary trip to the host country helps in
orienting international employees to international assignments. A well-planned overseas trip
for the candidate provides a preview that allows them to assess their suitability for and interest
in the assignment. Such a trip serves to introduce expatriate candidates to the business context in
the host location and helps encourage more informed pre-departure preparation.
Most firms that utilise preliminary visits weigh their cost against premature recall and
underperformance risks. A potential problem exists in that the aim of the preliminary visit is
often twofold–part selection decision and part pre-departure training.
Combined with cultural awareness training, the preliminary visit is a useful component of a
pre-departure programme. Exposure to the expatriate community, if one exists in the proposed
host location, can be a positive outcome of the preliminary visit.
1. Role of English as the Language of World Business: English is the accepted language of
world business, though the form of English is more “international English” than that
spoken by native speakers of English. Multinationals from English-speaking countries
such as the United States, the United Kingdom, and Australia often use this fact as a reason
for not considering language ability in the selection process, and for not stressing language
training as part of pre-departure programmes.
2. Host-country Language Skills and Adjustment: The ability to speak a foreign language
can improve the expatriate’s effectiveness and negotiating ability. It can improve manager’s
access to information regarding the host-country’s economy, government, and market.
The degree of fluency required depends on the level and nature of the position that the
expatriate holds in the foreign operation, the amount of interaction with external
stakeholders such as government officials, clients, trade officials, as well as with host-
country nationals. Language skills are important for task performance and cultural
adjustment.
Language skills become an important aspect. PCNs can find themselves performing as Notes
communication conduits between subsidiary and headquarters, due to their ability to
speak the corporate language. It also can give added power to their position in the subsidiary as
PCNs often have access to information that those not fluent in the corporate language are
denied.
MNCs take advantage of relocation specialists to provide the practical assistance. The local
orientation and language programmes are normally organised by the personnel staff in the host
country but the corporate HRM staff must liaise with the sending line manager as well as the HR
department in the foreign location to ensure that practical assistance is provided.
There are differences in the way people approach tasks and problems and that this can have an
impact on the learning process. The ability to transfer knowledge and skills in a culturally-
sensitive manner should be an integral part of pre-departure training programmes. An
international assignment can be a promotion to a managerial role for which the preparation is
effectively the international assignment.
In some firms, pre-departure training may not be provided to TCNs–to the extent that is available
to PCNs. This could create perceptions of inequitable treatment in situations where PCNs and
TCNs work in the same foreign location. As an Australian working in the Japanese subsidiary of
a U.S. multinational remarked, “We were third-class nationals in Japan. The Americans received
cultural training about Japan before they left the United States.”
These assimilators require the trainee to read a short episode of a cultural encounter and choose
an interpretation of what has happened and why. If the trainee’s choice is correct, he or she goes
to the next episode. If the response is incorrect, the trainee is asked to read the episode again and
choose another response.
Notes
Caselet Example of Cultural Assimilator
S
ituation: Sharon, a schoolteacher in Athens, was amazed at the questions that were
asked of her by Greeks whom she considered to be only casual acquaintances. When
she entered or left her apartment, people would ask her where she was going or
where she had been. If she stopped to talk, she was asked questions like, “How much do
you make a month?’ or ‘Where did you get that dress you are wearing?’ She thought that
the Greeks were very rude.
Question
Options
1. The casual acquaintances were acting like friends do in Greece, although Sharon did
not realise it.
2. The Greeks asked Sharon those questions in order to determine whether she
belonged to the Greek Orthodox Church.
3. The Greeks were unhappy about the way she lived and they were trying to get
Sharon to change her habits.
4. In Greece, such questions are perfectly proper when asked of women, but improper
when asked of men.
Solution: The casual acquaintances were acting like friends do in Greece, although Sharon
did not realise it. It is not improper for in-group members to ask these questions of one
another in Greece. Its their beliefs and attitude due to cultural differences in Greece and
America. Furthermore, these questions reflect the fact that friendships tend to be more
intimate in Greece than in America. As a result, friends are generally free to ask questions,
which would seem too personal in America. This is basically the cultural diversity and the
behavioural changes that have made Sharon feel very rude. But for Greeks, this is a
gesture for more friendliness and openness. Americans being very reserve does not share
such details with each other but in Greece, people tend to become friends and become
open, so they can share such issues with their friends.
If you have chosen any other option, then you will be explained why that option or
interpretation is not right.
Notes: Cultural appropriation is the adoption of some specific elements of one culture by
a different cultural group. It includes the introduction of forms of dress or personal
adornment, music and art, religion, language or behaviour. These elements are typically
imported into the existing culture and lack the subtleties of their original cultural context.
Because of this, cultural appropriation is sometimes viewed negatively, and has been
called “cultural theft.”
Source: http://www.studymode.com/essays/Expatriate-Training-And-Support-833959.html
Mendenhall and Oddou (1986) enrich Tung’s contingency framework by presenting one which
groups the cross cultural training (CCT) methods into high, medium and low levels of rigor and
suggests the desired duration of CCT.
According to Mendenhall and Oddou’s (1986) paradigm, where the duration of sojourn in the Notes
host culture is long (1-3 years), the degree of interaction and integration with the foreign culture
is deemed to be high. This necessitates a high level of training rigor. The corresponding training
approach, the “impression approach”, employs methods like assessment centres, field
experiences, simulations, sensitivity training and extensive language training. Information giving
training methods like area and cultural briefings, affective training like role-playing are also
included to provide the comprehensiveness the nature of the overseas assignment warrants.
Hence, the length of training has to be long (1-2 months).
This framework has been criticised for not explaining how the level of rigor of a specific CCT
method is determined (Black and Mendenhall, 1991). One can also caution that there is no simple
one-to-one correlation between the duration of sojourn and the required degree of interaction
and integration with the host culture. Whereas a three-day trip to the Philippines for the purpose
of conducting a branch audit necessitates minimal cultural integration, an assignment of the
same duration to the Philippines for discussing and concluding the finer details of a joint venture
warrants full cross-cultural readiness and competence.
In an attempt to improve on Tung’s (1981) and Mendenhall and Oddou’s (1986) frameworks,
Black and Mendenhall (1989) proposes a CCT methods selection framework based on the social
learning theory (SLT) (Bandura, 1977).
The social learning theory (Bandura, 1977) states that learning can take place in two ways: One,
by positive reinforcement and second, by duplicating the learned behaviour acquired
symbolically or by associating the behaviours with the outcomes. The four core elements of the
theory are attention, retention, reproduction and incentives.
The trainees are more likely to pay more attention if the training model used is popular and
easily available. If the training approach is the type that the trainees are used to, attention level
will also be higher. In addition, where reward is expected, attention level can reach new heights.
Retention is measured by the extent the trainees commit the principles, skills and insight acquired
to memory. This can be reinforced by frequently modelling and rehearsing the desired
behaviours.
Reproduction refers to translating the learned and retained behaviours into practice. The extent
to which this is done is greatly influenced by two factors: (1) the motivational effects of incentives,
specifically, how far the trainees believe that displaying the desired behaviours will lead to the
desired outcomes; (2) to what extent the trainees believe they can perform the desired behaviours.
The SLT attempts to capture the essence of several important theories. It integrates the cognitive
and behavioural theories. It explains the notion of motivation within the concept of self-efficacy
as well. The issue of how the trainee acquires and display the desired behaviours taught to him
is also addressed. However, it is noted that “the importance of certain variables of SLT is
different in cross-cultural training situations (Black and Mendenhall, 1990). Also, attention,
retention and reproduction can be slowed by situational factors such as high culture novelty,
high degree of cultural interaction and integration, high job novelty (Black and Mendenhall
1991), and the trainees’ personal and familial characteristics (Tung 1981).
Notes Using SLT to Account for CCT Rigor and Rigor of CCT Methods
The SLT defines rigor as the degree of cognitive involvement required. The relative degree of
rigor of specific CCT methods can also be captured in the symbolic modelling process and the
participative modelling process within the SLT (Black and Mendenhall 1991).
Symbolic processing can be divided into two forms. The first form refers to hearing about the
behaviours and translating them into images in the mind, Observation and rehearsal of the
behaviours then take place in the mind. CCT methods that utilise this form of modelling process
include verbal factual briefings, lectures and books. The other form differs in that the trainees
actually see the modelled behaviour before committing it into images. This form of modelling
process requires greater cognitive involvement and therefore the CCT methods that utilise this
process, for example films, role modelling and demonstrations, are more rigorous than the CCT
methods that appeal only to the sense of hearing. The effects of symbolic modelling can be
enhanced by utilising cognitive (or mental) rehearsal of the training content, which Black and
Mendenhall (1991) classify as factual in nature.
Black and Mendenhall (1989) proposes that the relative rigor of a specific CCT method can be
approximated by examining the modelling and rehearsal processes involved, as well as the
duration and frequency of a training program. The longer the training, and the more frequently
it is held, the more rigorous it is.
The SLT literature and the CCT literature lend evidence that increasing the rigor of the training
amounts to increasing the trainees’ effectiveness in producing the desired cross-cultural
behaviours (Bandura, 1977; lUng, 1981; Black and Mendenhall, 1990). Black and Mendenhall
(1989) explain that this is because rigor, expressed in the form of cognitive involvement, raises
the level of attention and retention, hence improving reproduction proficiency.
Like Tung (1981) and Mendenhall and Oddou (1986), Black and Mendenhall (1991) identify
culture novelty, degree of cross-cultural interaction and job novelty as important factors
influencing the choice of CCT methods. Yet they move one step ahead by analysing the
components of each factor.
Hofstede (1980) offers a method to estimate the culture novelty of a foreign culture relative to
the American culture. He makes use of four scales: power distance, uncertainty avoidance,
individualism, and masculinity. The absolute difference in scores on each of the four scales
between the employees of the target country and the American employees are determined and
summed. A large number indicates high culture novelty. Culture novelty can also be estimated
by assessing whether there is any difference in the functional languages used in the home and
the host countries, and whether there is any need to learn the languages to facilitate cross- Notes
cultural success (Black and Mendenhall 1991).
The “quantity” of an individual’s previous experience involve not only all his past experience
with the host culture, but also all his previous interactions with a culture similar to the host’s.
The “quality” of the individual’s previous experience refers to the intensity of his cultural
interaction with the host culture or a similar culture. Intensity is measured by the frequency and
degree of involvement of the interaction.
The more frequent the trainee is expected to interact with the local nationals, the higher the
intensity of interaction. ‘Where the interactions are numerous and significant, interaction
intensity is high. The nature of the interactions plays a part in determining its intensity too. In
this connection, the literature on communication has supplied reasons to believe that novel,
two-way, unique, face-to-face, long-term, and informal cross-cultural interactions would be
more trying than the opposite (Jablin, Putnam, Roberts, Porter, 1987).
Job novelty, the third important situational factor, is task-related. The more novel the new
assignment is, the greater the assistance needed to help produce effective behaviour. This means
that more rigorous training is required. Stewart (1982) suggests that to estimate the degree of
job novelty relative to a specific trainee, three job characteristics should be considered: (1) extent
of similarity in job demands between previous jobs and the new; (2) extent of similarity in job
constraints between previous jobs and the new; (3) extent of similarity in job autonomy and
authority between previous jobs and the new.
In view of the fact that maladjusted spouses and children can directly influence the expatriates’
success or failure in the host country, the novelty of the foreign culture and the degree of
expected interaction with the culture ought to be assessed in much the same way as is done for
the expatriates (Black and Stephens, 1989).
Black and Mendenhall (1991) integrate the notions of culture novelty, interaction, job novelty
and CCT rigor by reasoning that high culture novelty, interaction and job novelty make the
process of attention, retention and reproduction slower. It is necessary to add rigor to the
training programs because it can capture attention better, deepen retention and facilitate
reproduction proficiency. Correspondingly rigorous CCT methods are therefore selected. To
add, it has been shown that job novelty is relatively easier to adjust to than culture novelty and
a high degree of interaction with the host culture (Black and Stephens, 1989). And since it is
possible to quantify the respective dimensions, CCT programs can be customised for each
trainee.
This means that a trainee who faces a highly novel job will receive relatively more training that
will increase his technical competence. Likewise, where the degree of interaction is high, learning
in this area heeds to be enhanced by emphasising on training topics such as interpersonal skills
and perception. Where the degree of culture novelty is high, topics, such as country studies need
emphasis. Thus, the trainee receives more assistance to more effectively acquire and emit the
kind of behaviour that will contribute to impressive cross-cultural performance (Black and
Mendenhall, 1991).
Black and Mendenhall (1991) do not distinguish between cognitive and affective engagement.
However, it is noted that affectively engaging training methods (for example, sensitivity training)
are surely more rigorous than the cognitively engaging ones (for example, area studies). In
comparison with cognitive, information-gathering programs, affective and immersion-oriented
programs require more personal involvement of participants, especially when the need for
Notes degree of integration with the host-culture increases (Brislin, 1979; Mendenhall, Dunbar, and
Oddou, 1987).
In sum, the bulk of the review is focused on the work of Black and Mendenhall (1991), the reason
being their work is the most refined to date, backed by the social learning theory. The common
idea shared by all the three frameworks reviewed is that there must be a fit between the CCT
needs of the trainees and the rigor of the CCT program adopted, at all phases of CCT.
Let us discuss one more model suggested for expatriate manager assessment and development.
Beitler and Frady’s (2002) model of Expatriate Manager Assessment and Development builds
upon aspects of Harrison’s (1994) and Jordan and Cartwright’s (1998) work. Beitler and Frady’s
(2002) model includes the following steps:
Assessment: Any management development program should begin with assessment. The
assessment phase should be especially comprehensive for expatriates because of the unique
KSAs required for foreign assignment. The typical management assessment instruments are
helpful, but they should be supplemented with instruments such as the Cross-Cultural
Adaptability Instrument (CCAI) and the Self-Directed Learning Readiness Scale (SDLRS).
Individualised Learning Agreements: The learning agreement, as detailed in Beitler (2000, 1999),
should include the following:
E-Support during Foreign Assignment: This step is critical in the Beitler and Frady (2002) model.
Training and development for the expatriate manager only begins in the pre-departure phase.
Ongoing support is necessary for success. The expatriate manager will need to acquire additional
KSAs after arriving in the host country. In the pre-departure phase, managers can acquire
knowledge (K) through classroom learning, skills (S) through daily mentoring, and proper
attitudes (A) through face-to-face counselling sessions. During foreign assignment, classroom
learning must become E-learning, daily mentoring must become E-mentoring, and face-to-face
counselling must become E-counselling. The technology is now available to support E-learning,
E-mentoring, and E-counselling (see Beitler & Frady, 2002). Today’s global organisations must
utilise that technology.
Periodic Re-assessment: This is very important for the success of the foreign assignment. The
expatriate manager should receive as much feedback as possible. Guidance from a host country
supervisor or sponsor would be ideal but is not always possible. At a minimum, peers and
subordinates should be surveyed for input.
Learning Agreement Revisions: New learning agreements should immediately follow the
periodic performance reviews. Plans for enhancing strengths and ameliorating weaknesses
should be clearly written.
On-going E-support: Ongoing support in the forms of E-learning, E-mentoring, and Notes
E-counselling is an investment that will yield substantial returns for the organisation. This
support should be well planned and monitored for continuous improvement.
Who’s Involved?: A comprehensive expatriate support system should include all four of the
following:
1. Manager
2. Spouse
3. Dependents
4. Host-country sponsor
E-learning, E-mentoring, and E-counselling can be provided for all four stakeholders mentioned.
Expatriate training and support is critically important to the success of international organisations.
It is important that the contents of the training programmes should be designed differently and
they should match with the processes and learning environment according to national cultures.
Also, if learning does occur, the new behaviours will not be utilised if they are not reinforced.
In a study investigating learning styles by giving a questionnaire to British, Indian, East African
middle managers, two dimensions of learning styles were measured analysis and action. The
analysis dimension measured the extent to which the learner adopts a theory building and test
approach as opposed to using an initiative approach. The action dimension measured the extent
to which the learner uses a trial and error approach as opposed to a contemplative or reflective
approach. It is found that Indian managers scored higher in analysis, British managers in action
and East African managers scored the lowest in both analysis and action.
The most common types of training is self-evaluation. Participants in such training are provided
personal insights about their behaviours, whether their managerial style is intuitive, factual,
analytical or normative.
1. A factual style manager looks at the available information and makes decisions based on
the data.
2. An intuitive style manager is innovative and imaginative and can jump from one idea to
another.
3. An analytical style manager is systematic and logical and carefully weighs alternatives to
problems.
4. A normative style manager is idealistic of all four types of styles in varying degrees, but
by learning their individual preferences, participants gain insights into their own approach
to dealing with people.
Notes
Many MNC training programmes in the U.S. are shifting to the more intense competitive,
test-oriented, and result-oriented educational system used so well by Japan. Japanese
firms employ the most effective on-the-job training and developmental programmes in
the modern business world. The Germans are following the Japanese lead and are
developing outstanding on-the-job training programmes. MNC training programmes
include public education, relative levels of secondary schooling, and on-the-job training,
computer literacy, and worker motivation.
Example: The German power Tool Company has used apprentice training programmes
to triple the productivity of its Virginia plant. A similar apprenticeship training programmes
are paying big dividends for Potter and Brumfield, Inc., another German-owned plant in the
United States.
Task You are HR manager of the company. Analyse the training program you will
design for the employees of your company who will be leaving for USA in next 2 months
to handle a business assignment.
HCNs can be transferred into the parent country, into either its headquarters or home-subsidiary
operations. There are various motives for HCN staff transfers:
Example:
(a) The Pepsi-Cola International Management Institute is an umbrella system for the delivery
of training programmes such as sales force management or production techniques for the
manufacturing or Pepsi brands.
(b) Fiat, the Italian automobile manufacturer, uses staff transfers as part of its training
programme, with HCN recruits spending time at corporate headquarters.
2. While technical and managerial training may be the primary goal, there is often a secondary,
yet equally important, objective of building a sense of corporate identity.
3. Particular skills may be required in the subsidiary and the most cost effective way is to
bring certain HCN staff into the parent operations.
Notes
Example: When Ford Australia began manufacturing the Capri model – a sports car
aimed at the U.S. market – Australian production and engineering employees spent time in
Ford’s U.S. factories to quickly gain the necessary knowledge required to meet U.S. safety
regulations.
4. The presence of HCNs may assist in broadening the outlook of parent-company employees
as HCNs have particular knowledge and skills that can be transferred into parent
operations.
Cultural adjustment is inherent in international staff transfers, regardless of the direction of the
transfer–that is, whether it is the PCN moving to a subsidiary, a HCN coming into parent
operations, or transferring to another subsidiary. In order to design and implement HCN pre-
departure training, local management, particularly those in the HR department, need to be
conscious of the demands of an international assignment.
Self Assessment
7. Most expatriates are selected from within the multinational’s existing operations.
8. Once an employee has been selected for an expatriate position, personality development
training is considered to be the next critical step.
9. The self-awareness is to provide the trainees with insight into their receptiveness and
propensity for successful cross-cultural assignments.
10. The specific knowledge acquisition phase includes area studies, language studies and host
attitude awareness.
11. It is not very significant for the trainee to become aware of the attitudes he or she will face
in the host country.
12. Trainees must also be alerted to possible negative attitudes toward nationality, race, or
gender.
Foreign assignments are an important mechanism for developing international expertise – for
both management and organisational development. Many multinationals are conscious that
they need to provide international experience to several levels of managers and not just to a
small cadre of PCNs.
1. One technique used to develop larger pools of employees with international experience is
through short-term development assignment ranging from a few months to several years.
Notes
Example: The Global Leadership Programme at the University of Michigan provides
external training programmes for a period of five weeks. Teams of American, Japanese, and
European executives learn global business skills through action learning. To build cross-cultural
teams, the programme utilises seminars and lectures, adventure-based exercises, and field trips
to investigate business opportunities in countries such as Brazil, China, and India. The overall
objective of the Global Leadership Programme is to produce individuals with a global perspective.
3. Action learning approach: It is the approach which is applicable to both individual and
organisational learning and is widely adopted in British and international companies.
This approach is based on the assumption that learning is bound up with the process of
management and everyone in the organisation should be engaged in learning. This
presupposes the availability of information in the organisation sufficient to enable learning
to take place throughout the organisation.
Revans (1965) suggests that there are four forces bearing on management decision-making:
(b) The analytical approach available to the manager, whilst not forgetting intuition
which is the first weapon of management;
(c) The ability to understand and contain variability and risk by the use of statistical
methods;
4. Experiential learning approach: Kolb (1976) developed the concept of experiential learning
as a process or cycle comprising four stages. It is:
(d) Testing of the implications of concepts for future action which then leads to new
concrete experiences.
He states this as the way learning happens as it is governed largely by the pursuit of goals
that are appropriate to our own needs.
In the cross-cultural context Hughes-Weiner (1986) qualifies the learning process described by
Kolb as follows:
1. Concrete experience: People from different cultures are likely to have different background
and different experiences.
3. Abstract conceptualising: Because people from different cultures have different cognitive
frameworks, this may lead them to focus on irrelevant information or misinterpretations
in a particular situation, thus drawing wrong conclusions and theories in a different
cultural situation from their own.
In order to overcome the problems of transposing the experiential model on to other cultures,
Jackson (1995) proposes four learning modalities as follows:
2. Perception: Learners are more intuitive about sorting and judging information, or are
rational in a step-by-step approach in judging the quality of information that is the basis
for making decisions.
3. Cognitive: Learners are more subjective in the way they make decisions and solve problems
based on personal judgement, or base their decision-making more on logic and scientific
approaches.
4. Control: Learners prefer to rely on their own initiative or on the direction of an instructor.
Task Your company has recently under gone an International joint venture with a Japanese
firm and has decided to send 5 employees from India to Japan to handle the international
assignment. Being the HR of the company, you are asked to outline a detail plan for the
pre-departure training.
Case Study Working with a Service Provider for
Pre-departure Training
G
old Coast Institute of TAFE secured an Endeavour Mobility grant in 2009 for
tourism, hospitality and events students to undertake a three week industry
placement with Renaissance Hotel, Kuala Lumpur, Malaysia. In making the
application the institute was aware that it would need to identify a partner to adequately
prepare the students for their experience. Working with the Institute of Modern Languages
(IML), at University of Queensland a pre-departure language and cultural program was
designed.
The program ran over 12 weeks and involved a trainer from IML travelling to the Gold
Coast campus to deliver 2 hour sessions with the 12 students and their accompanying
teacher. The sessions included both language and cultural orientation programs. Given
that the students were from different industries and did not necessarily study together this
also gave them the opportunity to get to know one another and form as a group. Equally,
for the teacher who taught some of the students she also got to know the individuals
strengths and weaknesses and was able to plan and prepare accordingly.
The partnership with IML was very cost effective and enabled the students and staff access
to a local “expert” in the market. Post event surveys from the students rated the pre
departure program as highly effective. Whilst picking up key language skills in such a
Contd...
Notes short period of time is difficult it was also important in supporting students to grasp the
cultural shift that would be required to operate successfully in a 5 star hotel in the Malaysian
capital.
Question
What was the motive of Gold Coast Institute in providing the pre-departure training to
students?
Source:http://www.studyoverseas.gov.au/vetmobility/documents/8.2.1WorkingwithaService
ProviderforPre-departureTrainingCaseStudy.pdf
Self Assessment
13. A technique used to develop larger pools of employees with ……….. experience is through
short-term development assignment.
15. ……….. learning approach is bound up with the process of management and everyone in
the organisation should be engaged in learning.
7.4 Summary
Training refers to the acquisition of knowledge, skills, and competencies as a result of the
teaching of vocational or practical skills and knowledge that relate to specific useful
competencies.
Today, more and more companies are spending substantial amounts of money on training
and development of their employees to attain long-term organisational goals.
MNCs take great pains to select the right persons and provide them with appropriate
training before their departure as well as on arrival in a particular country.
Effective cultural training enables individuals to adjust more rapidly to the new culture.
Expatriate manger has to work in a different cultural if he is handling the international
assignment.
Expatriate managers can match their attitude, managerial style with the host country
culture, more effective they are in international assignments.
Proper training has to be provided so as to reduce the cultural dissonance feeling among
the expatriates.
7.5 Keywords
Analytical Style Manager: He is systematic and logical and makes decision rationally.
Cultural Assimilators: It is a programmed learning technique that is designed to expose members Notes
of one culture to some of the basic concepts, attitudes, role perceptions, customs and values of
another culture.
Culture: It is an integrated pattern of human knowledge, belief, and behaviour that depends
upon the capacity for symbolic thought and social learning.
Development: It is the framework for helping employees develops their personal and
organisational skills, knowledge, and abilities.
Expatriate: An international manager who got a foreign posting, leaving his homeland to work
and live in other country to handle an international assignment.
Factual Style Manager: He looks for the available information for making decision.
Preliminary Visits: The technique of sending the employee on a preliminary trip to the host
country helps in orienting international employees to international assignments.
Training: It is the acquisition of knowledge, skills, and competencies as a result of the teaching
of vocational or practical skills and knowledge that relate to specific useful competencies.
1. Critically analyse the need of training for the expatriates, whether PCN or TCN.
2. You are a corporate HR manager. Examine the factors to be taken into account for an
effective pre-departure training programme.
3. Analyse the ways in which an organisation can impart the cross-cultural training to its
employees who would be handling the international assignments.
4. Critically analyse the motives of the HR manager for HCN staff transfers to either
headquarters or home subsidiary operations.
5. Being the head of the HR department, you are given the responsibility to develop the
international staff and multinational teams for your organisation. Devise a detailed plan
for the same.
6. Taking the example of McDonald’s, analyse the training strategies the might have developed
to handle their international business in India.
7. “Expatriate employee must adapt to and not feel isolated from the host country.” Did you
agree to the above statement? Give examples to justify the same.
9. Many big banking and financial giants have established their call-centres in India despite
the cultural diversity. Outline the reasons for the change in attitude of the corporate for
the same.
10. “Expatriate fluent in parent company language and the language of the host subsidiary
can perform a gate-keeping role.” Do you agree? Justify your answer.
11. Examine the factors that have led the MNCs to focus their attention for the expatriates
training before sending them for the international assignments.
12. Considering the example of the Indian firm, analyse the trainings programmes started by
them for their employees handling international assignments.
Notes 13. “Functional ability alone does not determine success. Some form of cultural preparation
is necessary.” Justify the statement giving the relevant examples.
14. Do you think cultural awareness programmes are effective enough to train the personnel
who will be handling the international assignments? Justify giving examples.
1. Development 2. Returns
3. Ethnocentric 4. High
7. True 8. False
15. Action
Books Rao, P. L. International Human Resource Management. First Edition. Excel Books.
New Delhi.
http://www.drbeitler.com/freestuff/articles/Expatriate-Training.pdf
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
8.1 Compensation
8.5 Summary
8.6 Keywords
Objectives
Introduction
Compensation tends to vary widely around the business world due to the economic differences,
differences in development levels, political factors, traditions and culture. A comparison between
U.S. and Chinese worker compensation showed that average wage of the Chinese worker is
only about 3 to 5% of that of U.S. worker, Chinese are not required to pay income tax, insurance
premiums, or pension plan payments. Chinese housing costs only about one dollar a month, so
the difference in net income is not as large.
Employee benefits vary by country. Benefits and employee perks constitute a much greater
share of the overall compensation package in Europe than in America. Cross-cultural differences
impact the importance of benefits. Like, vacation time is not an important benefit to the Japanese
Notes worker who seldom takes more than three or four days off in a year, but vacation and holiday
time-off is critical in Africa, most Muslim nations, and some Latin American countries.
8.1 Compensation
Compensation is the financial remuneration the employees receive in exchange for their labour.
Compensation management deals with wages, salaries, pay increase, and other monetary issues.
The compensation system is designed to reward employees in an equitable manner and to serve
as an inducement for the attraction and retention of a good workforce.
1. Be legal: Compensation decisions should be consistent with federal, state, and local laws
and regulation.
4. Be equitable: Employees should be made to feel that the compensation system is equitable.
5. Provide security: Employees should be made to feel that their income is secure and
predictable.
The design of a wage and salary structure begins with the job evaluation which is the
process of assessing the values of the jobs within the organisation. The most common job
evaluation system is the point system which is accomplished in seven steps:
2. Choose a point-based job evaluation that assigns point values for the various skills
and responsibilities inherent in the jobs.
4. Select the key jobs and obtain a pay survey to establish their market pay rates.
5. Compare the survey pay rates for the key jobs with their job evaluation points by
plotting a pay-trend line on a graph.
6. From the pay-time line, assign average pay rates to the non-key jobs.
7. Group the jobs into categories and establish pay ranges within each category.
HR executives in global firms spend a great deal of time and effort in designing and managing Notes
compensation programmes because of their high costs and impact on corporate performance,
commitment of employees and their retention. Compensation influences organisational culture,
recruitment and selection of competent employees, motivation and performance. So, there are
issues in designing compensation programmes, such as parity between HCNs and PCNs, state
of the labour market and relevant national laws and practices.
(a) These policy decisions should be consistent with the overall strategy, structure and
business needs of the multinational.
(b) The policy should attract and retain the best staff in those areas where the firm has
greatest needs and opportunities and where its core competency lies.
(c) The policy must facilitate the transfer of international employees in a cost effective
manner.
(d) The policy should give due consideration to equity and ease of administration.
(e) They should reduce cost of operations and enhance commitment of employees and
facilitate international posting and transfer of employees.
These policy decisions regarding compensation and benefits require the knowledge of
employment and taxation laws, customs, cost of living index, environment, employment
practices of various countries. Without such comprehensive knowledge and database, the
corporate HR executive will not be able to advise expatriates regarding avoidance of
double taxation or to reimburse the actual costs or decide about incentives that will
encourage employees to take up foreign assignments.
The knowledge of labour markets and industry norms regarding benefits and
compensation is also necessary. To ensure equity with PCNs, the salary of expatriates has
to be adjusted for foreign currency fluctuations of the two countries unless they are paid
full salary and allowances in the home country currency. If the expatriates are paid in local
currency, then their salary should also be adjusted for rise in the cost of living in that
country from time to time. So, HR managers have to continuously watch foreign exchange
rate fluctuations and monitor rate of inflation or cost of living index in different countries.
2. Employee aspirations from the compensation policy: International employee will also
have a number of objectives that need to be achieved from the firm’s compensation policy.
They are:
(a) They will expect the policy to offer financial protection in terms of benefits, social
security, and living costs in the foreign location.
(b) They will expect that a foreign assignment will offer opportunities for financial
advancement through income and/or savings.
(c) They will expect that issues such as housing, education of children, and recreation
will be addressed in the policy.
Notes In the new European Community (EC), efforts are progressing to establish Europay, by
which member nations would develop common policies regarding employment practices,
especially compensation.
Self Assessment
1. Compensation is the financial remuneration the employees receive in exchange for their
labour.
2. Compensation management deals with wages, salaries, pay increase, and other monetary
issues.
4. The knowledge of labour markets and industry norms regarding benefits and
compensation is not necessary.
Whenever the employee is send abroad for the assignment, it is preceded by the fresh negotiations
between the employer and the employee for its compensation.
There are two main approaches in the area of international compensation: Going Rate Approach
and Balance Sheet Approach.
In this approach, the base salary for international transfer is linked to the salary structure in the
host country. The multinational obtains information from local compensation surveys and
must decide whether local nationals (HCNs), expatriates of the same nationality, or expatriates
of all nationalities will be the reference point terms of benchmarking.
Example: A Japanese bank operating in New York would need to decide whether its
reference point would be local U.S. salaries, other Japanese competitors in New York, or all
foreign banks operating in New York. With the Going Rate Approach, if the location is in a low-
pay country, the multinational usually supplements base pay with additional benefits and
payments.
Features of the Going Rate Approach: Following are the features of the going rate approach:
4. Base pay and benefits may be supplemented by additional payments for low-pay countries.
Advantages of the Going Rate Approach: Following are the advantages of this approach: Notes
1. Equality with local nationals (very effective in attracting PCNs or TCNs to a location that
pays higher salaries than those received in the home country).
3. Expatriates are able to identify with the host country and there is equity among expatriates
of different nationalities.
Disadvantages of the Going Rate Approach: Following are the disadvantages of this approach:
It is widely used approach for international compensation. The basic objective is to “keep the
expatriate whole”, i.e., maintaining relatively to PCN colleagues, and compensating for the
costs of an international assignment through maintenance of home-country living standard,
plus a financial inducement to make the package attractive. The approach links the base salary
for PCNs and TCNs to the salary structure of the relevant home country.
Example: U.S. executive taking up an international position would have his or her
compensation package built on the U.S. base-salary level rather than that applicable to the host
country.
The key assumption of this approach is that foreign assignees should not suffer a material loss
due their transfer, and this is accomplished through the utilisation of what is generally referred
to as the balance sheet approach.
Features of the Balance Sheet Approach: Following are the features of the balance sheet approach
are:
There are four major categories of outlays incurred by expatriates that are incorporated in the
balance sheet approach:
1. Goods and services: home-country outlays for items such as food, personal care, clothing,
household furnishings, recreation, transportation, and medical care.
Notes Where costs associated with the host-country assignment exceed equivalent costs in the parent
country, these costs are met by both the firm and the expatriate to ensure that parent-country
equivalent purchasing power is achieved.
In this example, an Australian expatriate is assigned to a country called New Euphoria which has
a COLA index of 150 relative to Australia, and an exchange rate of 1.5 relative to the A$. In
addition to a Foreign Service premium, a hardship allowance is also payable for this location.
Housing is provided by the firm, and a national cost for this is recognised by a 7% deduction
from the package, along with a national tax deduction. The expatriate can see from this spreadsheet
what components are offered in the package and how the package split between Australian
currency and Net Euphoria currency.
Advantages of the Balance Sheet Approach: Following are the advantages of the balance sheet
approach:
Disadvantages of the Balance Sheet Approach: Following are the disadvantages of the balance
sheet approach:
2. It can result in great disparity between expatriates of different nationalities and between
the expatriates and local nationals.
One of the outcomes of the balance sheet approach is to produce differentiation between expatriate
employees of different nationalities because of the use of nationality to determine the relevant
home-country base salary. This is a differentiation between PCNs and TCNs. Many TCNs have
a great deal of international experience because they often move from country to country in the
service of one multinational (or several) headquarters in a country other than their own (example,
and Indian banker may work in the Singapore branch of a U.S. bank).
Multinational firms need to match their compensation policies with their staffing policies and Notes
general HR philosophy.
1. If a firm has an ethnocentric staffing policy, its compensation policy should be one of
keeping the expatriate whole (that is, maintaining relativity to PCN colleagues plus
compensating for the costs of international services).
2. If the staffing policy follows a geocentric approach, there may be no clear ‘home’ for the
TCN, and the firm will need to consider establishing a system of international base pay
for key managers paid in a major reserve currency, such as the U.S. dollar or the Deutsche
Mark.
CHOICE
Assignments Stock Purchase
CUSTO MIZE
CORE Base/
Competitive Cash Bonus Mix
Basic Benefits
Performance Based
Employability
Work Challenges
Flexible Stock
Schedules Options
Benefit Choices
Tax Deferral Base/Bonus Mix
This model groups consist of total compensation into three sets: core, crafted, and choice.
1. Specific practices in the core section may vary according to market and local conditions
but must be consistent with the core policies.
2. Crafted set of compensation elements assumes that regional managers have discretion to
choose from a menu of compensation forms.
3. Alternatives in the choice set of offer flexibility for employees to select among various
forms of compensation.
The model supports the performance management approach. This model has the potential to
overcome the problems identified in both the Going Rate and Balance Sheet approaches to
international compensation because firms may be able to utilise aspects of both approaches that
suit particular circumstances.
Notes offer regular surveys calculating cost-of-living index that can be updated in terms of currency
exchange rates.
Multinationals using the balance sheet approach must constantly update compensation packages
with new data on living costs, an ongoing administrative requirement. This is an issue to which
expatriate employees pay great attention, and forms the basis of many complaints if updating
substantially lags behind any rise in living costs. Multinationals must also be able to respond to
unexpected events, such as the currency and stock market crash that suddenly occurred in a
number of Asian countries. Some countries, such as Indonesia, faced a devaluation of their
currency by over 50% against the U.S. dollar in a matter of weeks, which had a dramatic impact
on prices and the cost of living.
MNCs should focus on business costs rather than living costs for expatriates because the
multinational firm is interested in the overall cost of doing business in a particular country as
well as the more micro issue of expatriate living costs.
Germany is the most expensive country overall because of its very high basic wages, while the
second most expensive rank for the United States is in large part because of high executive
salaries. In general, developed countries rank as more expensive than developing countries
because their wage costs are higher.
Self Assessment
6. In going rate approach, the base salary for international transfer is linked to the salary
structure in the ………… country.
7. ………… approach links the base salary for PCNs and TCNs to the salary structure of the
relevant home country.
8. ………… approach can result in great disparity between expatriates of different nationalities
and between the expatriates and local nationals.
9. ……….. set of compensation elements assumes that regional managers have discretion to
choose from a menu of compensation forms.
The area of international compensation is complex primarily because multinationals must cater
for three categories of employees: PCNs, TCNs, and HCNs. The key components of international
compensation include base salary, Foreign Service inducement/hardship programme,
allowances, benefits and taxation.
1. Base Salary: The term base salary acquires a different meaning when employees go
abroad. In a domestic context, base salary denotes the amount of cash compensation that
serves as a benchmark for other compensation elements (example, bonuses and benefits).
For expatriates, it is the primary component of a package of allowances, many of which
are directly related to base salary (example, Foreign Service premium, cost-of-living
allowance, and housing allowance) as well as the basis for in-service benefits and pension
contributions. The base salary is the foundation block for international compensation and
the employee’s package depending on whether the base salary is linked to the home
country of the PCN or TCN or whether an international rate is paid.
(a) Housing allowance provision implies that employees should be entitled to maintain
their home-country living standards. Such allowances are often paid on either an
assessed or an actual basis. Other alternatives include company-provided housing,
either mandatory or optional; a fixed housing allowance; or assessment of income,
out of which actual housing costs are paid. Financial assistance and protection in
connection with the sale or leasing of an expatriate’s former residence are offered by
many multinationals. Those in the banking and finance industry tend to be the most
generous, offering assistance in sale or leasing, payment of closing costs, payment
of leasing management fees, rent protection, and equity protection.
(b) Home leave allowances allows the employers to cover the expense of one or more trips
back to the home country each year. The purpose of paying for such trips is to give
expatriates the opportunity to renew family and business ties, thereby helping
them to avoid adjustment problems when they are repatriated.
(c) Educational allowances for expatriate’s children are an integral part of any international
compensation policy. Allowances for education can cover items such as tuition,
language class tuition, enrolment fees, books and supplies, transportation, room
and board, and uniforms. The level of education provided for, the adequacy of local
schools, and transportation of dependents who are being educated in other locations
may present problems for multinationals. The employer typically covers the cost of
local or boarding school for dependent children, although there may be restrictions,
depending on the availability of good local schools and on their fees.
(d) Relocation allowances usually cover moving, shipping, and storage charges, temporary
living expenses, subsidies regarding appliance or car purchases (or sales), and down
payments or lease-related charges. Allowances regarding perquisites (cars, club
memberships, servants, etc.) may also need to be considered (usually for more
senior positions, but this is according to location). These allowances are often
contingent upon tax-equalisation policies and practices in both the home and the
host countries.
(e) Spouse assistance allowance: This is provided by many multinational firms as it help
guard against or offset income lost by an expatriate’s spouse as a result of relocating
abroad. Although some firms may pay an allowance to make up for a spouse’s lost
income, U.S. firms are beginning to focus on providing spouses with employment
opportunities abroad, either by offering job-search assistance or employment in the
firm’s foreign unit.
4. Benefits: International benefits bring more difficulties while dealing with compensation
for the employees. Pension plans are very difficult to deal with country to country because
Notes national practices vary considerably. Transportability of pension plans, medical coverage,
and social security benefits are very difficult to normalise.
Most U.S. PCNs typically remain under their home-country’s benefit plan. In some countries,
expatriates cannot opt out of local social security programmes. In such circumstances, the
firm normally pays for these additional costs. European PCNs and TCNs enjoy portable
social security benefits within the European Union.
Multinationals also provide vacations and special leave. Included as part of the employee’s
regular vacation, annual home leave usually provides airfares for families to return to
their home countries.
Rest and rehabilitation leave based on the conditions of the host country also provides the
employee’s family with free airfares to a more comfortable location near the host country.
Emergency provisions are available in case of a death or illness in the family. Employees
in hardship locations often receive additional leave expense payments and rest and
rehabilitation periods.
5. Taxation: Taxation causes the most concern to HR practitioners and expatriates (both
PCNs and TCNs) since it generally evokes emotional responses. No one enjoys paying taxes
and this issue can be very time consuming for both the firm and the expatriate. For the U.S.
expatriate, an assignment abroad can mean being double – taxed-both in the country of
assignment and in the United States. This tax cost, combined with all the other expatriate
costs, makes some U.S. multinationals think twice about making use of expatriates.
1. Tax equalisation: firms withhold an amount equal to the home country tax obligation
of the PCN, and pay all taxes in the host country.
2. Tax protection: the employee pays up to the amount of taxes he or she would pay on
compensation in the home country. In such a situation, the employee is entitled to
any windfall received if total taxes less in the foreign country than in the home
country.
Tax equalisation is by far the more common taxation policy used by multinationals. Thus, for
PCN, tax payments equal to the liability of a home-country taxpayer with the same income and
family status are imposed on the employee’s salary and bonus. The firm pays any additional
premiums or allowances, tax-free to the employee. As multinationals operate in more and more
countries, they are subject to widely discrepant income tax rates.
Example: In Singapore, if the expatriate receives the payment for the services rendered
outside the country are not subjected to Singapore taxation, if a separate contract is established
between the expatriate and a non-Singapore employer.
Notes
Task Critically analyse the compensation practices across India, USA, China and Japan.
Caselet International Packages
By Dona Dezube
Negotiating compensation can be tricky in the US, but if you’re offered an international
job, compensation issues grow exponentially more complex.
While packages differ by company, some items appear in most international employment
offers: a housing allowance, help paying taxes, spousal employment help and trips home.
Those extra items can more than double compensation.
Missing a big-ticket item will lower your living standard thanks to the extra costs of
international living, says Geoffrey Latta, executive vice president of ORC Worldwide, a
New York City-based workforce consultancy.
Location matters, too. “The way you negotiate your package and the things you put in
your package are highly dependent on the countries where you go,” says Alain Verstandig,
president of Net Expat, an Atlanta international relocation company.
Culture influences how and when an international salary is negotiated. In the UK, whether
the position is one with a new company or your current firm, start the conversation by
talking about your place on a team, achievements and your added value, and then discuss
salary.
In Shanghai, attitudes toward pay are split. “Anyone over 40 would be against talking
about money, but the younger generation is extremely direct about talking about money,
so analyse the age group of the recruiter,” Verstandig says.
Source: http://career-advice.boston.monster.com
One aspect of compensation that varies from country to country and has important implications
for both subsidiary HR managers and HQ-based managers is the issue of what happens if the
MNC decides to leave a foreign country or another firm takes over the management, and is not
interested in doing business in this country. When such a decision is made, termination liabilities
may result in significant payoffs to employees. By tradition, or law, or union contract, the MNC
may be required to pay up to two years’ salary to employees who are involuntarily terminated.
Self Assessment
10. ……… salary denotes the amount of cash compensation that serves as a benchmark for
other compensation elements.
11. The Cost-of-living Allowance (COLA) involves a payment to compensate for differences
in expenditures between the …….... country and the foreign country.
Notes 12. ……… allowance provision implies that employees should be entitled to maintain their
home-country living standards.
13. Tax ………… is by far the more common taxation policy used by multinationals.
Executive compensation refers to the compensation received by the top executives of business
corporations. This includes a basic salary, bonuses, shares, options and other company benefits.
Because of the changing economic conditions, it is very difficult to find and retain the executives
who can motivate the people and lead the company to the heights by clearly communicating
and achieving the vision of the organisation.
It is a common trend that the executives are swayed by the unique and the challenging opportunity
rather than the attractive compensation packages. But, over the past three decades, executive
compensation has risen dramatically beyond the rising levels of an average worker’s wage.
Executive compensation is an important part of corporate governance, and is often determined
by a company’s board of directors.
Overall compensation is very important as the qualified candidate enjoys more negotiating
power. So, the company needs to have a flexible compensation packages for their executives.
Executive compensation packages can be designed by studying the competitors offerings as
well.
The basic components of the executive compensation includes the base salary, short-term
incentives or bonuses, long-term incentive plans, employee benefits, perks and compensation
protection (golden parachute). Long-term incentive plan comes in the form of performance
shares or matching shares of the company.
In addition to it, the executives participate in “broad based” employee benefit plans and receives
special benefits like life insurance and supplemental retirement’s plans. The compensation
package of the executives is very flexible as the components of their compensation packages
may vary from equity, restricted stock, flexible schedules, deferred compensation, performance
incentives and other kind of compensation.
1. Equity or stock options are the contracts which give the recipient the right to buy the share
of the stock at a “pre-specified” exercise price for a pre-specified term. The amount of the
stock option given by the company to its executive depends on the industry and the
valuation of the stock. They typically become exercisable over time. They are normally
non-tradable and are forfeited if the executive leaves the firms before exercising.
2. Restricted stock are the stocks given to an executive that cannot be sold until certain
conditions are met and has the same value as the market price of the stock at the time of
grant. As the size of stock option grants have been reduced, the number of companies
granting restricted stock either with stock options or instead of has increased.
3. Now a day’s international companies have started adding flexible schedules to the
executives pay packages. Employers offering the flexi time or compressed workweeks, in
geography (telecommuting or satellite workplaces), in time off (floating holidays or
vacations carry over) and in career paths (job-sharing) have an added advantage in
attracting the talent pool.
4. Deferred compensation plans are effective tools for retaining employees because they
reward employees based on the company’s performance over time (typically three to five
years). They are an investment vehicle that allows people to defer taxation of both the Notes
initial contribution and the earnings on the deferred assets.
5. Performance incentives are special incentives – shares of stock, cash, vacations, or other
bonuses – tied to the performance of the department or business area that the executive
manages. Performance incentives linked to long-term goals create vision that can inspire
an executive to remain committed to a company.
6. Other benefits like car allowances, life insurance, relocation payments, flexible start dates,
signing bonuses, use of company-owned vacation property, health-club membership,
tuition reimbursements, etc. Offering non-monetary incentives also helps in attracting
the talented candidates for the executive level.
Example: US corporations pay their top executives salary and short-term incentives or
bonuses. This combination is referred to as Total Cash Compensation. Short-term have some
performance criteria attached depending on the role of the executive. The Sales Director’s
performance related bonus may be based on incremental revenue growth turnover; a CEO’s
could be based on incremental profitability and revenue growth.
There are a number of strategies that could be employed as a response to the growth of executive
compensation.
1. In the United States, shareholders must approve all equity compensation plans.
Shareholders can simply vote against the issuance of any equity plans. This would
eliminate huge windfalls that can be due to a rising stock market or years of retained
earnings.
3. Disclosure of salaries is the first step, so that company stakeholders can know and decide
whether or not they think remuneration is fair. In the UK, the Directors’ Remuneration
Report Regulations 2002 introduced a requirement into the old Companies Act 1985, the
requirement to release all details of pay in the annual accounts.
4. A say on pay – a non-binding vote of the general meeting to approve director pay packages,
is practiced in a growing number of countries. The aim is that the vote will be a highly
influential signal to a board to not raise salaries beyond reasonable levels.
6. Maximum wage is the idea to place a cap on the amount that any person may legally
make, in the same way as there is a floor of a minimum wage so that people can not earn
too little.
7. Indexing Operating Performance is a way to make bonus targets business cycle independent.
Indexed bonus targets move with the business cycle and are therefore fairer and valid for
a longer period of time.
Executive compensation is a very important issue for investors to consider when making
decisions. An improperly compensated executive can cost shareholders money and can produce
Notes an executive who lacks the incentive to increase profits and boost share price. Meanwhile, the
government is working to curb the problem with new laws that close loopholes and make the
process more transparent. Combined with new analysis tools, investors are now much more
informed.
Self Assessment
14. ……… compensation refers to the compensation received by the top executives of business
corporations.
15. Equity or ………. options are the contracts which give the recipient the right to buy the
share of the stock at a “pre- specified” exercise price for a pre-specified term.
Case Study Lucent Technologies
L
ucent Technologies was spun-off from AT&T in 1996, representing one of the most
successful initial offerings in history. Lucent conducts business in 94 countries with
more than 1,30,000 employees. The company is one of the world’s leading designers,
developers and manufactures of communication system, software and products. Among
its most significant intellectual assets is the prestigious Bell Labs, which is the foundation
of Lucent’s research and development efforts.
HR at Lucent
While Lucent is competing in the rapidly changing technology market, and has become a
flexible and nimble ‘new’ organisation, it carries the legacy of AT&T. But it is dedicated to
break with that tradition with respect to how it manages human resources. Lucent’s goal
is to shift from the old ‘entitlement’ culture to a new culture that focuses on individual
accountability and results. The demand and challenges of this organisation renewal effort
are reflected in a Workforce that is relatively senior and where the number of retirees
exceeds the number of current employees. In contrast to AT&T, Lucent is very intensive
with more than 40,000 employee under union contract.
Within this context, Lucent’s HR is committed to the goal of ‘unleashing the power of
Lucent people for competitive advantage and superior business results.’ To support that
goal, Lucent is in the process of a major effort to restructure and refocus its HR function.
The new HR function intends to be fast, focused on business needs, and flexible. Its personnel
will achieve these goals by emphasising both operational excellence and value creation,
the latter reflecting a move away from an active focus on results. Finally, HR is committed
to raising the leadership profile of human resources at Lucent, with the belief that it can
provide value for its business partners, and it aggressively shares that story outside the
HR community.
Contd...
This strategy begins with clear to links Lucent’s five simultaneous equations: five financial Notes
goals (example double return on assets, achieve double-digit growth in revenue and
operating income while maintaining gross margins) and five growth goals (above market
growth rates in five specific business areas). Lucent intends to drive this growth through
the development of a High Performance Operating Environment, using the acronym
GROWS to indicate the importance of:
The new HR structure is organised around a client service model that focuses on its pre-
eminent clients, on the leaders in the major business units charged with achieving these
financial and growth goals. A key feature of this strategy is the movement of as much of
HR as possible to these business units.
Lucent’s new HR structure is the foundation of the high-profile role HR will play in the
company. The model emphasises client services at three levels of the organisation:
individual employee/retiree (nearly 3,00,000) in total, supervisor/coaches (33,000) and
senior leaders (381). There is a delivery channel established for each of these clients that
draws on separate HR policy and centres of excellence. At one level, Lucent is committed
to operational excellence on a one-to-one interface. For example, Lucent reports that 90%
of the clients using the employee centre have their problems handled on the first call.
Business HR Services has moved from 115 days’ job requisition to start date to less than 40
days. More than 85% of all clients using HR’s business services report being ‘very satisfied’
with HR; the goal is 90%.
The lynchpin for value creation throughout Lucent, however, is the role of HR business
partners in which HR leaders work directly with the senior business leaders to implement
business strategy. While the business partners, and indeed each of the three delivery
channels are measured against strict client satisfaction objectives, their ultimate goal is for
the senior executives to say at the end of the year, “we were very successful and could not
have done without HR.” The vision requires strong commitment to the senior leadership
that HR is working on their problems and that all HR initiative are always focused on
solutions for their clients. The details mean going to staff meetings, even when there are
no HR issues to be discussed, so HR representatives can better understand the business
and contribute to business decisions beyond HR issues; or the creation of team of 58 HR
professionals (The HR Accelerators) whose job is to find and eliminate (dismantle) HR
policies and practices that no longer add value to Lucent’s shareholders; or it means
bringing the marketing manager from network systems to address a video town meeting
of the worldwide Lucent’s HR community. The speaker describes what is required to
significantly grow business and how HR can partner in these efforts (better motivational
programmes for the sales force, new competencies based on future oriented thinking, and
so on).
Lucent also developed a new competency model to support the development of the business
partner role HR. The competencies were developed using internal reviews and external
Contd...
Notes benchmarking sources and emphasise five areas that answer the question, ‘What are the
knowledge, skills, commitments that will enable the business partners to their customer’s
(internal client’s) expectations?’ These competencies are then to be integrated into an HR
system of learning and developing, staffing and selection, career development and
performance management. The initial integration is through individual assessment tools
that form the basis of a customised career development plan. The business partner
competency model will, over time, serve as a foundation for such models in other HR
roles at Lucent.
Talent Acquisition
Talent acquisition is a high-impact HR area for Lucent because the firm is looking to grow
rapidly in selected markets, often representing competencies outside their traditional
strengths. While this remains a continuing challenge, Lucent’s HR function is making
progress, as a business partner, in being able to anticipate and respond quickly to the
work force planning implications of the client’s business strategies. HR personnel have
been able to incorporate work force planning models at the strategy development stage in
a way that allows them to get the right person in the right place and at the right time. For
example, the HR has developed a simple staffing model based upon benchmarked work
force productivity numbers (revenue per employee), given revenue projection at the
business level. Using the revenue/employee estimates, HR can estimate reasonable
headcount project and skill mixes. This also allows them to avoid overstaffing and the
subsequent downsizing required. The key challenge here is for the HR leader to develop
the personal competencies to coordinate not only the technical analysis, but perhaps more
importantly, to play the genuine leadership role necessary where HR and business problems
interface.
Compensation
Lucent’s compensation system continues to evolve with the new demands on the company.
The share of variable pay among lower-level employees has been increased. Lucent has
changed its pay system, which has historically been driven by job evaluation based on the
Hay system. For middle managers, variable pay represents about 16% of the total
compensation.
80% is based on Lucent’s corporate performance and other 8% is based on unit performance
and individual performance. For individual rewards, the pool is determined by unit
performance. Manager’s reward is based on individual rewards working under them.
Earlier there were 350 types of grants, from which employees could choose up to the
extent based on management’s evaluation of their performance. The company also provided
every employee on a worldwide basis 100 options as ‘founder’s grants’ when Lucent went
public.
Contd...
Lucent developed what is called a ‘policy deployment’ plan for its bonus programme in Notes
Network Systems, the largest unit before reorganisation. Managerial bonuses are based
on three components: financial (60%), customer (20%), and people (20%). The people
dimension of the plan was based on Management by Objective (MBO) thresholds involving
the high-performance cultural initiative, diversity goals, and had 100% of the employees
with development plans. If the company did not meet its earnings per share goals, there
would be no bonus irrespective of performance on the Other Dimensions.
Many of the Lucent’s most pressing HR challenges revolve around supporting the need
for organisational renewals and new competencies at a time when global markets demand
very short cycle times. Business units are often required to start a new ‘business’ from
scratch over very short timeframes in order to respond to customer demands. The ability
to ‘ramp up’ this type of recruiting and hiring effort in a company that, until recently, had
focused largely on downsizing is a significant challenge. More broadly, HR needs to
support a larger renewal effort in all of the business units with focus on significant hiring
of ‘new blood’ with the drive and future-oriented skill sets that Lucent’s new strategy
demands. But again, the key challenge is to get these competencies in a timely fashion so
that human capital issues do not impede the successful implementation of the firm’s
strategy.
A related theme involving organisational renewal is the relationship between the firm’s
performance management and development process. Lucent needs to develop new
competencies among the existing workforce and had developed a clear strategy for
achieving this goal. Senior managers are adopting a vision of leadership that focuses on
bringing the most out of people, while at the basic supervisory level, managers need to do
a much better job of coaching for development and changes. Lucent also continues to work
on appropriate development policies. It is investing very significant resources in employee
training, but is in the process of identifying the returns from this investment in quantifiable
terms. Finally, Lucent’s leadership understands they have some skill gaps, but see it as one
of their challenges. The need is to create competencies, to understand the development
implications of this gap, on the part of both the HR and the line managers.
HR Competencies
As far as Lucent’s HR function in developing its new strategic role is concerned, there was
recognition that the HR community also requires additional ‘reinvention’. It was observed
that HR was good at cost control and transaction business, but not as competent in adding
strategic value. This will require HR, which has traditionally been relatively isolated
from the major business strategic decisions, to break with its past behaviour if it is to fulfil
its role as a business partner. In fact, as the concept of service excellence becomes critical
throughout the firm, many more people will be engaged in HR work, so the relationship
between HR and its staff role will need to be transparent. Lucent needs to ask: What kind
of competencies will be advisory role required to facilitate this transaction?
HR at Bell Labs
Bell Labs has a unique group of employees involved in some unique HR challenges.
Firstly, HR cannot “get in the way” or fulfil the role of the gatekeeper or ‘policy police’; it
simply will not be tolerated in this environment. In addition, talent acquisition takes the
form of ‘one of a kind’ hires, rather than 100 engineers at a time. At the same time, HR has
to develop broader business acumen and managerial skills among a group of managers
that think typically that technology is all that matters. Finally, Bell Labs currently employs
Contd...
Notes less than 5% of its workforce. This will change in the future as Lucent will be expected to
establish a ‘Bell Lab presence’ in many of its significant international markets.
Labour Relations
Given Lucent’s labour intensity and increasing pressure to control costs, the Company is
likely to face a major challenge with respect to labour relations. Lucent cannot afford to
continue strategies of the past. The company is intent on changing its traditional relationship
with its labour unions based on the fact that it no longer is a telecommunications service
provider and competes against a different set of competitors.
Questions:
1. What are the ‘salient features’ of the human resource policies being practised in
Lucent? Describe in detail.
2. Do you think the competency model for business partner role in Lucent is effective
in view of the integration of competencies into an HR system of learning and
development? Discuss in the light of the facts given in the case.
3. Do you feel that compensation policies in Lucent are comparable with some of the
best international employers? Explain your views with the help of examples, if any.
4. What are the various HR challenges being faced by Lucent in view of the highly
competitive global markets? How is Lucent managing the same?
Source: Rao, P. L. International Human Resource Management. First Edition. India. New Delhi.
8.5 Summary
Compensation tends to vary widely around the business world due to the economic
differences, differences in development levels, political factors, traditions and culture.
Compensation is the financial remuneration the employees receive in exchange for their
labour.
HR executives in global firms spend a great deal of time and effort in designing and
managing compensation programmes because of their high costs and impact on corporate
performance, commitment of employees and their retention.
Whenever the employee is send abroad for the assignment, it is preceded by the fresh
negotiations between the employer and the employee for its compensation.
The key components of international compensation include base salary, Foreign Service
inducement/hardship programme, allowances, benefits and taxation.
Compensation decisions are very strategic decisions and are important for achieving
organisation goals and objectives.
8.6 Keywords
A Say on Pay: A non-binding vote of the general meeting to approve director pay packages.
Balance Sheet Approach: The base salary for PCNs and TCNs to the salary structure of the
relevant home country.
Benefit: An indirect reward given to the employees as a part of the organisational membership. Notes
Compensation: It is the financial remuneration the employees receive in exchange for their
labour.
Going Rate Approach: The base salary for international transfer is linked to the salary structure
in the host county.
Job Evaluation: The process of assessing the values of the jobs within the organisation.
Stock Options: It is the contract which gives the recipient the right to buy the shares of the stock
at a pre-specified exercise price for a pre-specified term.
Vesting: The period of time before the recipient has the right to transfer shares and realise value.
Vesting can be based on time, performance or both.
3. Being a corporate HR, explain your plan/approaches you will follow for handling
international taxation of the employees.
4. You are the HR manager of international firm. Devise the compensation plan for the
middle-level executive.
5. What factors you will consider in devising a compensation plan for the expatriate?
8. You are the employee of a company which has recently decided to send you abroad for the
assignments. Outline your expectations from the company in terms of compensation.
10. Being the HR manager of the firm, give a detail outline of the compensation management
in international context.
11. “Compensation policy of a company helps in attracting and retaining the talented pool”
Do you agree? Justify.
1. True 2. True
3. False 4. False
15. Stock
Books Rao, V. S. P. Human Resource Management. Excel Books. India. New Delhi.
Rao, P. L. International Human Resource Management. Excel Books. India. New Delhi.
www.compensationlink.com
http://www.investopedia.com/articles/stocks/07/executive_compensation.asp
#ixzz2HHnRWNxy
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
9.1 Standardisation and Adaptation of Work Practices
9.1.1 Host-country Culture and Workplace Environment
9.1.2 Mode of Operation
9.1.3 Firm Size, Maturity and International Experience
9.1.4 Subsidiary Mandate
9.1.5 Global or Local Work Practices and HRM
9.2 Retaining, Developing and Retrenching Staff
9.3 Language Standardisation in International Business
9.4 Monitoring HR Practices Internationally
9.4.1 Approaches to Measuring HR Performance
9.5 International Joint Ventures and HR Practices
9.6 Summary
9.7 Keywords
9.8 Review Questions
9.9 Further Readings
Objectives
Introduction
A multinational’s approach to its subsidiary operations centres around the process, procedures
and practices that can be and should be transferred, and to degree to which they require
adaptation, so as to be effectively implemented at the local level. Transferring technology,
systems and know-how are seen as significant aspects, and the role of people in the process is a
critical part.
Expatriates are used to oversee the successful implementation of appropriate work practices,
and there is a link between the number of expatriates and the transfer of multinational work
practices.
Notes At some point, multinational management replaces expatriates with local staff with the
expectation that these work practices will continue as planned. This approach is based on
assumptions that appropriate behaviour will have been instilled in the local workforce through
training programmes and hiring practices, and that the multinational’s way of operating has
been accepted in the manner intended. In this way, the multinational’s corporate culture will
operate as a subtle, informal control mechanism—a substitution of direct supervision.
This depends on receptivity of the local workforce to adhere to corporate norms of behaviour,
the effectiveness of expatriates as agents of socialisation and whether cost considerations have
led the multinational to localise management prematurely. Thus, the standardisation adaptation
choice that confronts the multinational in other areas of its operations applies to the management
of the global workforce. Factors that influence standardisation are:
Home/host
Values
Corporate
Standardization
of work behaviour
s
Placement
Procedures
s
Atti tude
Processes
Work behaviour is culturally determined to the extent that it is contained in role definition and
expectations. For a multinational with subsidiary operations in 70 countries, establishing a
common corporate culture may be important for cohesion, but whether that corporate culture
can supersede or supplant other ‘cultures’ is a question. The managerial attitudes towards
subsidiary management may include a firm belief in the power of a strong corporate culture and
expectations that employees internalise or ‘buy into’ corporate values.
Corporate identity is important and it is possible to generate a sense of pride and belongingness Notes
that enable unity of purpose to be achieved. Subsidiary staff may have strong identity with the
local unit, but the challenge is to foster employee identification with the global level.
People may be prepared to adopt certain work behaviours to retain their employment, but that
does not necessarily mean that they ascribe to the corporate values that shape required behavioural
outcomes.
Example: Chinese working in Japanese plants in China perceived team briefings and
other such forums as a new form of rhetoric, replacing nationalist and Communist party
propaganda of the past, and consequently were considered of little value by workers and
managers.
Cultural distance also affects the degree to which work practices require adaptation. One can
expect hiring practices to be more between the US and India. As more multinationals set up
operations in countries previously closed to foreign direct investment on a large scale, one can
expect some convergence of HR practices.
The presence of expatriates and their ability to encourage and impose appropriate work behaviour
also affects the work culture. A preference is given to HCN in key positions by multinationals
operating in India because they could learn easily in his years spent on the job. Localisation of
HR staff positions is more likely to ensure that local customs and host-government employment
regulations are followed.
A multinational ability to impose standardised work practices is not only affected by cultural
differences that may create resistance to change from subsidiary staff. It is affected by the form
of operation that the multinational uses.
Entering via an acquisition may provide the multinational with market advantages, but its
ability to transfer technical knowledge, systems and HR practices may be restricted. Plant and
equipment may need upgrading along with the skills of the work that the purchaser inherits. It
is called Brownfield – where the multinational acquires an existing local firm as part of the
establishment of a local operation, but the multinational effectively replaces many of the resources
and capabilities.
The local company requires considerable investment and restructuring to make it operational,
and this will include human resources, with a high demand on expatriates initially. Investment
in training programmes has been a critical factor. This type acquisition is more common in
emerging markets, such as those of Eastern Europe.
Mode of operation can inhibit or facilitate standardisation. There are two examples that can be
used to prove that. In late 1978, the Chinese government announced an open-door policy and
commenced economic reforms aimed at moving the country from a centrally planned to a
market economy. Western firms that entered China early were more or less forced to enter into
joint ventures with State Owned Enterprises (SOEs), whereas those entering later have been able
to establish wholly owned operations.
Example:
1. Shanghai Bell-a joint venture formed in 1983 between a Belgian telecommunication firm,
the Belgian government and the Chinese Postal and Telecommunications Industries
Corporation (PTIC). There was a gradual transfer of relevant technology by the Belgian
Notes firm with a long-term reliance on Belgian expatriates. The Belgian firm had limited control
over the Chinese employees in the joint venture and was constrained by its partner’s
expectations and differing goals.
Ownership and control are factors that need to be taken into consideration while MNCs opts for
the standardisation of work practices. The autonomy to implement processes and procedures is
naturally higher in wholly owned subsidiaries. Complementarities between International JV
partners and the degree of interdependence between the International JV and multinational are
important influences on effective JV operation and transfer of work practices. The importance of
a strategic objective for the International JV in determining work practices in China has been
studied. Those firms pursuing a strategic position in China were more likely to seek to diffuse
task related work practices compared with those who were more short-term. The task-related
influence in an International JV plays important role in directly shaping HRM practices.
The management contract involves the heavy use of expatriate staff. External recruitment for the
majority of management staff requires the contract filling. The purpose is to buy management
expertise that expatriates bring to the situation. There is a large component of training of HCNs
involved. Management may not have the same degree of discretionary power that full ownership
brings.
Example: The US hotel chain Holiday Inn had a 10-year contract with a Tibetan hotel.
The expatriate managers were precluded from giving incentives to or disciplining its staff. This
created some difficulties when hotel employees took their breaks at the same time – which
happened to be when guests arrived expecting lunch. Management contracts are used extensively
in the hotel industry.
Franchising refers to the methods of practicing and using another person’s business philosophy.
The franchiser grants the independent operator the right to distribute its products, techniques,
and trademarks for a percentage of gross monthly sales and a royalty fee. Various tangibles and
intangibles such as national or international advertising, training, and other support services
are commonly made available by the franchiser. Agreements typically last from five to thirty
years, with premature cancellations or terminations of most contracts bearing serious
consequences for franchisees.
Key factors influencing international operations are the size and maturity of the multinational.
Motorola’s experience in China reflects its large size and the fact that it had a wealth of
international experience upon which Motorola management could draw when considering
entering a transitional economy such as China.
A smaller multinational who is a relative newcomer to international business, may not have the Notes
same level of ability or resources and an alternative mode of operation such as a joint venture
would be an attractive proposition.
The position of the subsidiary is related to the size and maturity of the multinational. Subsidiaries
roles and positions alter over time and related to subsidiary initiative-taking, power and resource
relationships, host-country environment, and the predisposition of top management and the
active championing of subsidiary managers. This proves that subsidiaries may be both initiators
and producers of critical competencies and capability that contribute to competitive advantage.
Centres of excellence at the subsidiary level can be viewed as an indication of MNCs recognising
the levels of expertise that differs across the organisation and that not all innovation and best
practice originate from headquarters.
Staff movements across subsidiary operations are one way to break down these barriers and
produce corporate rather than subsidiary champions who are prepared to disseminate information
about subsidiary initiatives and capabilities and recommend adoption in other parts of the
organisation where appropriate.
Personal relationships are built up by when key staff visits to other units, facilitated information
sharing and the eventual adoption of new products by other subsidiaries. Face-to-face meetings
are important in building trust and exchanges of tacit knowledge. Project teams where members
are drawn from various business and functional units are used.
Forces for standardisation are mainly internal to the multinational driven by the need for
control and to sustain competitive advantage. Host governments may encourage standardisation
through the transfer of foreign work practices, processes and management techniques if such
moves are aligned with political and economic imperatives.
Forces for adaptation come from external constraints that the multinational confronts in its
various markets. People across borders contain elements of both standardisation and adaptation
and multinational transfer of managerial and HR practices both influence and inhibit convergence.
A key factor here is time. Organisations are not static.
Example: In China, early entrants localised their HRM practices, however, during 1990s
there seems to have been a trend towards introducing more Western HRM policies in China.
There are many cases where multinationals have successfully replicated work practices in their
foreign subsidiaries through intensive training programmes designed and implemented by
headquarters. This is particularly true regarding technical training for operating employees in
areas where certain skills and work practices are regards as strategically essential.
Example: Japanese multinationals such as Nissan and Honda have been able to train
substantial numbers of HCNs in their US, UK and European subsidiaries with reasonable success.
The conduct or delivery of training programmes may have been modified to cater for local
differences but the outcome is similar.
3. There is not connection between the number of expatriates and the transfer of multinational
work practices.
4. The standardisation adaptation choice that confronts the multinational in other areas of its
operations applies to the management of the global workforce.
7. Cultural distance also affects the degree to which work practices require adaptation.
8. Ownership and control are factors that need to be taken into consideration while MNCs
opts for the standardisation of work practices.
Example: The US-based data technology company Seagate closed one of its Irish plants
in 1997 despite having been in operation for only 1 year. Seagate repaid the Irish government
the $16 million it had received in grants to establish the Irish plant instead. It increased the size
of its Malaysian plant to capitalise on the fall in value of the Malaysian currency. At the time
Seagate had 30% of world disk drive market, employing 108,000 people worldwide.
Unit labour costs and skilled labour are important considerations and markets that provide a
large pool of highly skilled, yet relatively cheap labour are doubly attractive. India is one such
market.
Example: Despite a recent slump due to the collapse of the ‘dotcom’ boom, the
information technology industry in India is regarded as attractive owing to its workforce
composition–highly educated, skilled programmers and software engineers who earn a fraction
of the salaries of their US counterparts. To capitalise on this cost advantage, US firms such as
IBM, Hewlett-Packard and Electronic Data Systems have outsourced software development to
Indian suppliers.
Other multinationals, such as General Electric, have used the availability to speak English with
accents and idioms so that US, UK and Australian customers are often unaware that their ‘local’
call has been diverted to a call centre in India.
Notes In the Chinese context, the role played by network connections called guanxi:
dyadic personal relationships between people. These relationships bear similarities to the
Western practice of networking but there are differences— guanxi are contingent upon
Contd...
conditions that this poses for Western executives. They suggest that hiring practices for Notes
key positions should take into account prospective Chinese employee’s guanxi. The
difficulty is being able to assess whether prospective employees have the right guanxi.
When hiring Chinese nationals for executive jobs because of their communication skills,
local contacts and understanding of the domestic market, many multinationals have found
that Chinese managers lack decision-making skills and are wary of taking personal
initiatives. Along with job-related skills and for problem solving in high-pressure, they
should have the right guanxi.
However, this can lead to unexpected labour costs if the local partner regards the joint venture
operation as a convenient way of redeploying surplus employees who may not have the skills
required. Then, the multinational have to invest heavily in the training of HCN staff in the IJV,
leading to escalating training costs. The risk of poaching again is high. However, multinationals
will weigh labour availability and cost against strategic imperatives.
Task You are the HR manager of an organisation. Give a detailed outline for the
developing and retrenching the staff.
Self Assessment
11. The attraction of an ………… is that a more experienced local partner can assist in identifying
a suitable workforce.
Language is a vital tool. It is a means of communicating thoughts and ideas and it forges
friendships, cultural ties, and economic relationships. Language is not only a vehicle for the
expression of thoughts, perceptions, sentiments and values characteristic of a community but
also represents a fundamental expression of social identity. It is the common speech which
serves as a peculiar potent symbol of the social solidarity of those who speak the language.
Language retention helps maintain feelings of cultural kinship.
The adoption of official bilingualism has provided the younger generation managers with tools
and knowledge to excel not only at home but beyond the national borders. This has allowed
them to reach for the dreams and succeed in areas they may not have otherwise. The knowledge
of the English language is one of the most important tools. It is one of the international languages,
a tool of communication between countries, cultural groups, various companies and
organisations, communities and friends.
Language is knowledge and one of the key factors in competitiveness. Brains and knowledge
creates the prosperity and growth. In an advanced industrial society in an increasingly
interdependent world, the knowledge of other languages becomes indispensable. The advent of
Notes the Internet has changed human lives. For the last few years, millions of people across the
world, who share common interests, are able to communicate with each other and exchange
ideas. Not only are they able to do this due to the various technological advances, but also
because they share a common language.
Language training is a desirable component if any one is moving out from his home country to
abroad for handling the international assignments. As we move toward hemispheric economic
integration, the knowledge of other languages of the hemisphere is becoming a highly
marketable skill.
English is the language of world business, though the form of English is more “international
English” than that spoken by native speakers of English. It is one of our official languages.
Multinationals from English-speaking countries such as the United States, the United Kingdom,
and Australia often use this fact as a reason for not considering language ability in the selection
process and for not stressing language training as part of pre-departure programmes. Language
skills are important in terms of task performance and cultural adjustment. Language proficiency
in other country allows following advantage to MNC and expatriate:
1. The ability to speak a foreign language can improve the expatriate’s effectiveness and
negotiating ability.
3. The degree of fluency required depends on the level and nature of the position that the
expatriate holds in the foreign operation, the amount of interaction with external
stakeholders such as government officials, clients, trade officials, as well as with host-
country nationals.
4. The ability to speak the local language different from their home country was as important
as cultural awareness in their ability to adapt and perform on assignment.
5. Knowledge of the host-country language can assist expatriates and family members gain
access to new social support structures outside of work and the expatriate community.
9. It gives added power to their position in the subsidiary as PCNs often have access to
information that those not fluent in the corporate language are denied. A PCN fluent in
the parent-company language and the language of the host subsidiary can perform a gate
keeping role. It permits PCNs to have a broader outlook on their surroundings as they are
able to look at issues with a broader perspective.
Culture and language are interrelated. The way we use language reflects cultural preferences for
type of communicative behaviour. Culture will affect the extent to which one speaks loudly and
quietly, whether use lots of “I” statements, whether choose very explicit language. Intercultural
or cross-cultural pragmatics is the contrastive or comparative study of such communicative
norms aiming to reach a better understanding of the cultural value or values that underpin them.
Situation or context also dictates language choice. Various terms have been coined for certain
types of key expressions that are related to specific contexts or situations. These key expressions
are useful in raising clients’ awareness about the relationship between language and culture. Notes
They are expressions whose linguistic meaning is distorted because of the role they have in a
specific situation: linguistic meaning versus use.
Example: When a British English speaker asks the question: how are you, s/he doesn’t
expect a lengthy reply about the state of the respondent’s health. If an American says “let’s get
together some time”, s/he may be saying no more than “goodbye”. If a Japanese speaker says
“yes” in a meeting, it is as well to understand that this is the politeness dictated by the situation
and in no way indicates agreement or an undertaking to act.
Language carries with it cultural coding. Numerous problems are encountered by MNCs in
adapting themselves to foreign countries cultures. Culture, colour, style, etc. have to be altered
to be successful in foreign countries as they carry different meanings across borders than in the
native country.
Example: White symbolises death in Japan and much of Asia; green represents danger or
disease in Malaysia. Using the wrong colour in these countries might produce negative reactions.
Some product names travel poorly due to which MNCs have to face failures internationally.
Example: The gasoline company ESSO found out that its name means “stalled car” in
Japan. While on the other hand, Kodak is the best example for correctly conveying the meaning
internationally for its brand as this name was pronounceable everywhere but had no specific
meaning anywhere.
Social norms vary greatly from country to country and it is difficult for any outsider to be
knowledgeable about all of them, so local input is very vital.
Example: One firm promoted eyeglasses in Thailand with commercials featuring animals
wearing glasses. In Thailand animals are considered a low form of life; humans would never
wear anything worn by an animal.
The translations of an advertising message convey the concept of the original but do not precisely
duplicate the original.
Example: PepsiCo learned this lesson when it discovered that its slogan “Come alive
with Pepsi” was translated into German as “Come alive out of the grave with Pepsi.” In Asia, the
slogan was once translated as “Bring your ancestors back from the dead.”
So, it is imperative for the MNCs to prepare themselves culturally before extending their
operations abroad. Knowledge has to be employed to assist companies and individuals overcome
challenges brought about through cross cultural differences in business. Areas in which assistance
is needed may range from relocation briefings to company mergers or management techniques.
Self Assessment
13. ……… training is a desirable component if any one is moving out from his home country
to abroad for handling the international assignments.
Humanism is defined in regard for people as an end in themselves, and as having a value in
themselves within an organisational context. Hence the locus of value, or the worth attributed
to persons in a work organisation is orientated towards those persons in themselves rather than
towards organisational objectives as appropriate ends. ‘Instrumentalism’ is defined as a regard
for people as a means to an ends (objectives) of the organisation.
Working across borders and cultures there is a need for lateral flexibility and to adapt work
practices and organisational forms appropriately. So, the interplay of the need to differentiate
across cultures and to integrate through international strategising comes to the force. This is
especially the case in international joint ventures.
One is to adopt a step-wise procedure, similar to the scientific method, in which meaningful and
reliable variables are identified. The process begins by developing as many measures as possible,
particularly in the HR areas of greatest concern. Second, measures whose potential benefit is
outweighed by the expense or difficulty of data collection are eliminated. Third, systems are
developed which regularly collect the necessary information, preferably devolved to line
management, and a commitment is made to the time and effort needed for analysing the data
and interpreting its meaning in the realm of HR strategy.
After two or three years (often the time required to realise the impact of an HR activity) it
becomes possible to reduce the number of measures to four or five key indicators by eliminating
those which only confirm the results of others. For example, if employee turnover, job satisfaction,
absenteeism and so forth were all perfectly correlated with one another, only one of the measures
is necessary; by examining this single measure a manager would know the company's
performance for all the others. The relationship between performance measures is often
complicated and non-linear, however, making multiple measures a virtual necessity.
Although this approach is laudable in its attempt to capture all measurable aspects of HR
performance, there is the risk that the task of collecting data, analysing them and interpreting
the results will be costly, time-consuming and result in no clear guidelines for action. There is
also the danger of what Eccles and Nohria (1992:160) called creeping numeration, which refers to
"the temptation to turn every measure deemed relevant into a crucial part of an official
measurement system". Indeed, once the decision is made to expand the class of measures from a
single (financial) category to three or four, and four or five measures are developed for each
category, a company can quickly have twenty or more 'key' performance indicators.
This second approach offers an appealing logic: if objectives have been defined in advance, there Notes
should be associated measures and thus no difficulty in collecting and interpreting the data.
Most managers simply cannot attend to twenty measures at once let alone optimise them despite
company rhetoric that may implore them to do so. In fact, imputing significance to each of these
measures may only push the problem of devising a meaningful performance measurement
system down to the level of each frustrated individual (Eccles and Nohria, 1992). But as Morgan
(1992) points out, this method also runs the risk of being too superficial. It is not enough to know
that a specific practice or activity has worked to a greater or lesser extent. To be of real benefit
there must be enough information to understand why the specific outcome has occurred, and to
incorporate the lessons learned.
A third approach to HR performance monitoring, one which is currently the vogue, is through
the process now known as Benchmarking. Benchmarking denotes a comparison with selected
performance indicators from different organisations, typically in the same industry, or with
comparable organisations that are considered to be "best in class". The most obvious points of
comparison are with close competitors, but some organizations have gone beyond their industry
group to identify best practice wherever it can be found. Xerox, for example, where benchmarking
has been credited as one of the main factors in its 1980s revival, has benchmarked railways,
insurance companies and facilities that generate electric power.
Self Assessment
14. Working across borders and cultures there is a need for lateral flexibility and to adapt
work practices and organizational forms appropriately.
15. According to Morgan (1992), there are five approaches to develop an effective performance
monitoring system in the area of human resource management.
16. The relationship between performance measures is often complicated and non-linear,
however, making multiple measures a virtual necessity.
17. Most managers can easily attend to twenty measures at once let alone optimise them
despite company rhetoric that may implore them to do so.
Traveling and living in an unfamiliar culture can be incredibly exciting, but it can also present
significant challenges. Some of the differences you identify in the host culture will be obvious:
language, climate, clothing, food, etc. Other differences, however, will not be obvious, and you
may not notice them at first. These differences can cause feelings of uncertainty, anxiety, and
frustration, as you feel cut off from the cultural cues and patterns with which you are familiar.
Remember that experiencing these stresses is a normal part of the cultural adjustment process.
The best defense is educating yourself about the host culture prior to departure, recognizing the
symptoms, and developing healthy strategies.
Caselet Sumitomo Metal Industries
S
umitomo Metal Industries (SMI) was established in 1897. Today it is one of the
leading companies in the Japanese steel industry although it has also diversified
into construction engineering, plant engineering, systems engineering, electronics,
advanced materials and biomedicines. It has a one trillion yen turnover, of which 80%
Contd...
Notes comes from steel. Tsuda (1996) describes the extensive programme of human resource
development within the context of changes that are affecting the steel industry.
Japanese views on work are changing. There has been a reduction in the workforce in
manufacturing industries. The upshot of this is that young people do not show as much
interest in manufacturing as they did in the past. The working environment has changed
with the introduction of microelectronics and computers, which have changed models of
operation. Managers have had to comply with improvement in working conditions,
eliminating the three ‘Ks’: kiken (dangerous), kitsui (hard) and kitanai (filthy).
There has also been an increase in the number of ageing employees in the workforce. With
a reduction in the total number on the production lines, this has interfered with the
smooth transition of tasks from skilled technicians to their successors, and has affected the
maintenance of high levels of technical performance. Within Sumitomo, there was therefore
a requirement to meet the needs to develop an adaptable and efficient workforce.
As a result, under the guidance of its philosophy of ‘valuing humanity and technology’ the
company has undertaken long-term, continuous and extensive educational and
development programmes, from top managers down to blue-collar workers. It had already
established, in 1952, an Apprentice School to provide in-company education and training
for junior high school graduates of three years in “moral education and practical affairs”.
Management development programmes are aimed at making the best use of the corporate
organisation ‘4Cs’ abilities: coordination, communication, creation and culture-orientation.
Training programmes are also directed at the ageing workers, to increase their abilities to
perform broader duties. They too are expected to ‘improve morale, revitalising old workers,
and to meet the demand for a reduction of working hours through multiplied skills and
restructured duties’.
Questions
1. How does the concept of ‘valuing humanity’ in the people management policies of
Sumitomo differ from concepts of human resource management as practised in
your organisation, or an organisation with which you are familiar?
2. How could your organisation, or one with which you are familiar in your country,
obtain the type of total commitment obtained in companies like Sumitomo?
The motives for entering into an IJV arrangement are many but a major reason is to spread risks.
Success seems to depend on an ability to balance the desire and need to control the venture on
the one hand and the need to maintain harmonious relations with the partner on the other hand.
The factors attributed to the failure of a joint venture are mostly human-related–poor decisions,
behavioural errors or unanticipated staffing events. So, an IJV presents a major management
challenge, particularly so when a foreign firm has been forced into the IJV by necessity rather
than choice – as is often the case in both China and India. HRM plays an important role in
assisting foreign firms to achieve their goals for their Indian IJVs.
Staffing: In a complex cultural context like India, it may be more advantageous to use local
managers. A major reason for HCN preference is the belief that the right Indian will know more
than what an expatriate manager can learn in years on the job. The success of some foreign firms
in India may be attributed to effective integration of the local IJV managers into the “global
family”.
Recruitment and Selection of HCNs: Once hired, it is not easy to dismiss employees under Indian Notes
labour laws. The Industrial Disputes Act provides strict rules for layoffs and dismissals. One of
the attractions of the IJV is the assumption that a more experienced local partner can assist in
identifying a suitable workforce. The IJV may perhaps even use the existing human resources
(its internal labour market) of the local partner, if this pool of labour is considered to be sufficient
in terms of skill and productivity levels.
Compensation: Since the economic liberalisation in the early 1990s, it has become more difficult
for foreign multinationals to find and retain high-quality local staff, as the rapid rise in the level
of foreign and local investments in India has lead to a shortage of skilled people. This, in turn,
is placing pressure on the compensation packages of qualified managers. Pressure is also being
brought to bear on the minimum wage level, and this will increase the cost of labour over the
longer-term.
Training and Development: International business operations place specific demands on effective
training and development of PCN, TCN, and HCN staff. Training expatriates in negotiation and
conflict-resolution skills are advocated to enable them to cope with, and resolve, the unexpected
issues and problems inherent in both the Indian context and operating in the joint venture
situation. The introduction of new production equipment and concepts such as just-in-time,
quality management, and so on, require additional training. Developing and retaining the
workforce so that the multinational has a pool of managerial talent to draw on is also a challenge.
A skill-based approach may contribute to improved labour productivity and better performance.
Despite wage and salary increases, it is still cheaper to hire quality HCNs than employing
expatriates, with the added advantages that locals are more familiar with the complexities of
Indian business culture. However, staff training and development remain as important
considerations.
Task Take the example of Saab-Tata joint venture and devise the changes in HR practices
which this organisation must have undergone after venture.
Self Assessment
18. The Industrial Disputes Act provides strict rules for layoffs and dismissals.
19. Since the economic liberalisation in the early 1990s, it has become easy for foreign
multinationals to find and retain high-quality local staff.
Case Study Barclaycard International: Recruitment in the
Context of an Internationalisation Strategy
T
his case study outlines the experiences of Barclaycard International and shows how
a range of HR issues have to be managed as the internationalisation process proceeds.
The role of local business partners in relation to recruitment and selection activity
develops, and the insights into what the central package of HR policies manages to create
Contd...
Notes in behavioural terms in the various local cultures also becomes more sophisticated. It is
worth bearing in mind that in sharing some of the detail behind recent events and placing
them into a structured account, it is easy to lose the sense of dynamism, pace and excitement
which surrounds such an internationalisation strategy.
Seeding Expansion
Barclaycard was established in 1966 as part of Barclays Bank PLC. Barclays Bank PLC’s
strategy has four medium term themes: to defend and extend UK Banking, build new
international markets, grow world class global product businesses; and develop operational
excellence. One of the ways in which global product businesses will grow is through the
expansion of the cards and loans business. Barclaycard was the UK’s first credit card and is
now one of the largest global credit card businesses. It has 11.2 million retail customers in
the UK, with 3.7 million cards issued internationally (up from 1.28 million cards in 2002
and 1.42 million in 2003). Barclaycard is a multi-brand credit card and consumer lending
business. It is currently one of the leading credit card companies in Europe and is increasing
its international presence.
Barclaycard encompasses: the Cards & Loans business mostly traded as Barclayloan,
FirstPlus, Clydesdale Financial Services and Monument credit cards. Outside the UK,
Barclaycard International operates in the United States, Germany, Spain, Greece, Italy,
Portugal, Ireland, Sweden, Norway, France Asia-Pacific and across Africa. Barclaycard
International is evolving from a domestic base and has some interesting challenges ahead
in doing so.
Barclaycard International first became profitable in 2003 with profits of £4 million. After
an alliance with the Standard Bank of South Africa in 2003 and launches the next year in
Ireland and Portugal, by 2004 profits increased to £8 million despite the investment costs
of the international expansion and acquisition. The acquisition of the US credit card issuer,
Juniper Financial Corporation, was completed on 1st December, 2004. Acquiring Juniper
(rebranded as Barclays USA) was part of Barclaycard International’s strategy to become as
meaningful a contributor to the Group as Barclaycard UK currently is by 2013. In order to
do this Barclays will invest significantly in Barclaycard International.
Growth Strategy
The HR Director and HR Business Partners support the Board Directors of Barclaycard
International and ensure an end to end HR service is provided to employees in every
location. As a HR Business Partner the challenge varies in each country but always includes
the question of how to ensure rigour and consistency across operations in very different
cultures, business markets and labour markets.
One area of focus for the HR Director for Barclaycard International is to put a platform of
people management processes in place that bring sufficient stability, governance and
control , ensure flexibility in global and local decisions and use this platform to enable
rapid future expansion. This means turning what has historically been a UK-centric
Contd...
operation into one guided by a global mindset. The broader agenda requires the Notes
establishment of processes, structures and frameworks that provide generic guidance and
clarity for country operations but have sufficient flexibility to accommodate cultural,
legal and social factors.
In order to achieve this, the primary agenda items for the HR team in 2006 include,
International Resourcing, International Mobility, Talent acquisition and development
and Global policies and frameworks:
One of the key challenges facing Barclaycard International is how to resource and then
transfer capability globally, either within an existing business or during start up and
subsequent building of a local business. To enable Barclaycard to recruit globally a range
of preferred recruitment suppliers are used from large global recruitment agencies to
specialised local firms: Given the nature of country operations, historically relationships
with these agencies and suppliers have largely been handled by local HR Business Partners.
The HR community is building up its networks across these agencies and ensuring that it
learns how best to manage the different types of agency and understand the true global
capability of suppliers as well as the availability of skills that are available in each labour
market.
To support the movement of internal employees, HR Business Partners now make sure
that all employees are aware of job opportunities in other countries. There is a common
site to share every vacancy between Hamburg, Zaragoza and Dublin and a frequent exchange
of information between country HR Business Partners. It is proving successful in sourcing
applicants and will be extended to all locations in due course.
Another consequence of rapid international expansion has been the need to create a
dedicated International Resourcing Business Partner. The new role has to act as a support
mechanism for HR Business Partners and business leaders in the acquisition of top talent
from the market. There will always be a significant proportion of recruitment activity that
is nationally focused. This requires decisions about which resourcing activities need
strategic and central oversight, and which can be left to the country-based HR Business
Partners. On the recruitment of the International Resourcing Manager, they will look to
Develop the employee value proposition and employment brand across countries
Advise on which processes must be run globally and which should best operate
under local context
Central Operation
Barclaycard’s call centre in Ireland builds the central platform to enable the business to
expand. It now employs 360 people, up from a base of only 10 people working in-country
in 1997. During this time there has been remarkable change in terms of international
recruitment. Barclaycard’s initial intention was to use Ireland to support non-UK operations.
Eight countries are now served out of the Dublin centre, including Ireland, Italy, Spain,
Contd...
Notes France, Germany, Portugal, Greece, and Botswana. Dublin was chosen as an early location
because of the nature of the role, the employee base, and the City’s labour market. As a
population there is an intention to stay in the country for around 12 to 18 months. They
will speak (and are hired for) their mother tongue in the job and markets they serve, but
the social interactions in work help improve their English language. The real challenge is
the 12–18 month timeframe as this has driven high levels of attrition.
Spain is an operation that has recently been moved “in-country”. 18 months ago it was
served by the Dublin centre, but on the Group acquisition of Banco Zaragozano Barclaycard
International took over responsibility for the credit card activity and launched a new
contact centre in the country. Because Dublin acted as the central operation, Barclaycard
offered employees the chance to move from Dublin to Spain. Around 35 staff moved from
Ireland back to Spain.
Mobility Contract
In order to enable global movement within Barclaycard International, the HR team has
devised an international mobility framework. Rapid global expansion requires the business
to be able to deploy skills and experience in a multitude of countries at short notice. This
cannot always be achieved at pace, through local recruitment, so expatriation of current
employees is often the best solution. However, employee mobility and the increasing
cost and complexity of expatriating individuals need to be considered. The recently devised
framework seeks to secure talented employees on to global contracts for which they are
paid a premium to be globally mobile. Some “light” expatriation benefits have been
added as a core component of this framework. The concept is now being tested in
Barclaycard International.
The HRBP is key to the set up of any assignment. The HRBP will work with the business to,
build up a robust business case, help identify employees and to work with the line manager
and individual/family to ensure all steps of the expatriation process are clear. To do this
Barclays has an International Assignments Services (IAS) team which support the HRBP,
the line manager of both home and host country and the individual employee. The IAS are
located within key global regions and are in a strong position to provide key financial and
cost data to all parties, and help facilitate the move once agreed.
The HRBP in the host and home country will track the employee while on assignment and
ensure the employee is kept up to date with key information, and to ensure the key skills
obtained on assignment are captured for talent and succession plan purposes. At the end of
the assignment the HRBP will work with the business and individual to secure either a
role back in the home country, an extension to current assignment or an alternative
assignment.
Another key priority for the HR function is to define and support a global mindset amongst
the senior leadership team. As the business continues on a dynamic growth curve, the
Contd...
business reflects a more global than a European focus. Two key initiatives have been Notes
developed to help and support the senior leadership team lead and embed a global culture.
The first is awareness building amongst the Senior Leadership community. A series of
workshop modules have been created to help facilitate the understanding of cultures
Barclaycard International work in or potentially could expand into in the near future. The
workshops have been based on creating an extensive range of country profiles through
external research, knowledge from Barclaycard’s employees and the support from the IAS
team. The workshops will help raise each individual’s understanding of their own personal
behaviours and will help each employee understand in greater detail the cultural challenges
faced in each country.
Secondly, building cross cultural training interventions. These may include, taster sessions
run by nationals or returning employees who have been working in the county. The key
is to link the activities successfully into the global induction programme. In addition,
personal development can be guided towards areas that will add real global value e.g.
language courses.
Internally, HR Business Partners facilitate twice yearly reviews of talent, agree who is on
the talent plan and agree with the business the development opportunities open to them.
This could vary from courses to development roles in other cultures. They have fairly
robust information about who has done what, where, and with what desires for international
mobility. Where they do not have the skills in place they aim to move people into arenas
that will develop these skills.
Externally, Barclaycard uses the top grading approach to hiring senior leaders. The role of
the HRBP and the business is to find the top 10% of candidates in their field of expertise on
a global basis, known as “A” players. In addition candidates are required to have an
international mindset. Alignment with Barclaycard values is important, and candidates
need to have a history of international working and given the nature of the sector, need to
have been involved in stretching roles, such as international mergers and acquisitions.
However, when resourcing rapid international expansion, do you start to recruit people
now for the markets that you want to move into, or do you wait until you are in-market
or near-market? The challenge is to “resource ahead of the curve”. One of the approaches
taken at Barclaycard International is to invest in market mapping. This has been done in
domestic markets for a while but they now use research agencies and head-hunters to map
a wider range of geographical labour markets by researching the people working in
similar roles to the ones that will be needed.
Contd...
Global policies and frameworks are required to ensure consistency, rigour, global
governance and risk management, however these are challenging given the cultural,
legal and social environments Barclaycard International operates its global processes on
an exception basis – such that even if the activity is culturally uncomfortable, the policies
establish explicit guidance and global protocols that make it clear what must be done,
unless it is illegal to do so. There are a number of Group-wide global standards to which
Barclaycard International must adhere. One such example is the new global
pre-employment screening policy, a subset of the global resourcing policy. With the
increasing need for control monitoring processes to be well established (Sarbanes Oxley),
Barclaycard International needs to manage its business risk by conducting rigorous levels
of due diligence on potential employees. Certain requirements of the new Group-
framework cannot be met due to legal constraints and others are difficult to meet due to
local cultural and social constraints which cannot be ignored.
Questions
1. Explain to the rest of the group how, in what ways, developments in the following
help Barclaycard International’s HR function assist the process of internationalisation:
(d) The changing role of HR Business Partners and other central co-ordinating
roles
2. Looking across the case study, and the sequence of HR issues that have to be managed
during the internationalisation process, is there a pattern to the decisions that have
to be made as to which HR processes need to be managed at a global level or co-
ordinated in country?
3. What tensions will exist between local Business Partners and central co-ordinating
roles in managing talent on a global basis? Have they got the balance of
responsibilities right?
Source: http://www.lums.lancs.ac.uk/files/10045.pdf
9.6 Summary
Ownership and control are factors that need to be taken into consideration while MNCs
opts for the standardisation of work practices.
The ability to speak the local language different from their home country was as important
as cultural awareness in their ability to adapt and perform on assignment.
9.7 Keywords
Brownfield: When the multinational acquires an existing local firm as part of the establishment
of a local operation, but the multinational effectively replaces many of the resources and
capabilities.
Culture: It is the set of shared attitudes, values, goals, and practices that characterises an institution,
organisation or group.
Franchising: It is the method of practicing and using another persons business philosophy.
Subsidiary: A company for which a majority of the voting stock is owned by a holding company.
3. “Language and culture of a country are interrelated.” Justify the statement giving suitable
examples.
4. Examine the differences in the HR practices followed in Indian companies with those of
US and China. Give examples.
5. Examine the factors that play a key role in retaining and retrenching the staff abroad. Give
examples in support of your answer.
6. Critically examines the factors that led to the standardisation of the work practices.
7. Analyse the relationship between the countries culture to the organisational environment,
discussing the effect of both on employees.
8. “HRM strategies are not solely determined by national cultural differences.” Comment
on the statement.
10. Does language has a significant effect on doing the business internationally? Justify.
1. True 2. True
3. False 4. True
5. False 6. True
7. False 8. True
19. False
Books Rao, P. L. International Human Resource Management. Excel Books. India. New Delhi.
Dowling, P. J. and Welch, D. E. (1999). International Human Resources Management.
4th ed. CENGAGE Learning.
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
10.4 Summary
10.5 Keywords
Objectives
Introduction
It is difficult to compare industrial relations systems and behaviour across national boundaries;
a labour relations concept may change considerably when translated from one industrial relations
context to another. The concept of collective bargaining in the United States means negotiations
between a labour union local and management; in Sweden and Germany it refers to negotiations
between an employers’ organisation and a trade union at the industry level. Cross-national
differences also emerge as to the objectives of the collective bargaining process and the
enforceability of collective agreements.
Before moving to trade unions and International industrial relations, let us first the basics of
industrial relations. ILO defines industrial relations, “Industrial relations deal with either the
relationship between the state and employers’ and workers’ organisations or the relation between
the occupational organisations themselves”. International industrial relations deals with the
complex relationships among employers employing foreign national, employees of different
nationalities, home and host country governments and trade unions of the organisations
operating in various countries and their national and international federations.
(i) Institutional factors: Home and host country government policy, labour legislation,
voluntary courts, collective agreement, employee courts, employers’ federations, social
institutions like community, caste, creed, system of power status etc. in various countries
form Institutional factors.
(ii) Economic factors: Include economic organisation, like capitalist, communist, mixed etc. ,
the structure of labour force, demand for and supply of labour force etc.
(iv) Social and Cultural factors: Include population, religion, customs and traditions of people,
ethnic groups, cultures of various groups of culture etc.
(v) Political factors: Include political system in the country, political parties and their
ideologies, their growth, involvement in trade unions etc.
(vi) Governmental factors: Include host and home country governmental policies like
globalisation policies, industrial policy, economic policy, labour policy, export policy,
migration and immigration policies etc.
Early involvement of Trade Unions is advised when MNCs plan to take over earlier Public
enterprises where there is a tradition of trade unions.
Industrial societies necessarily create industrial relations defined as the complex of interrelations
among workers, management and the government. Three major participants or factors of
industrial relations, thus, are workers and their organisations, management and the government.
1. Workers and their organisations: The total worker plays an important role in industrial
relations. The total worker includes working age, educational and family background,
psychological factors, social background, culture, skills, attitude towards others’ work etc.
Workers’ organisations, prominently known as trade unions, play major role in industrial
relations. The main purpose of trade unions is to protect the workers’ economic interests
through collective bargaining and by bringing pressure on the management through
economic and political tactics. Trade union factors include leadership, finances, activities
etc.
2. Employers and their organisations: Employers employ expatriates, pay salaries and various Notes
allowances, provide a variety of benefits, regulate the working relations through various
policies, rules and regulations and by enforcing labour laws of the country. They expect
workers to follow rules and regulations, contribute their resources to the maximum to
achieve organisational goals and mission. The difference between demands of the workers
and employers results in industrial conflict. Normally employers’ power is higher than
that of their workers. But their power is undermined when compared to that of trade
unions. Employers form their organisations to equate (or excel) their bargaining power
with that of the trade unions. These organisations protect the interest of the employer by
pressurising the trade union and the government.
A trade union is a continuing long term association of employees, formed and maintained for
the specific purpose of advancing and protecting the interests of the members in their working
relationship. Some argue that it also covers employers’ organisations and friendly societies.
Several factors are identified that may underlie the historical differences in the structure of the
trade unions in various countries:
1. The mode of technology and industrial organisation at critical stages of union development;
Notes Union structures differ considerably among Western countries. These include industrial unions,
which represent all grades of employees in an industry; craft unions, which are based on skilled
occupational grouping across industries; conglomerate unions, which represent members in
more than one industry; and general unions, which are open to almost all employees in a given
country. Enterprise unions are common in Asia-Pacific nations, although there are national
variations in their functions, and in the proportion of enterprise unions to total unions.
The lack of familiarity of multinational managers with local industrial and political conditions
has sometimes needlessly worsened a conflict that a local firm would have been likely to
resolve. Multinationals are recognising this shortcoming and admitting that industrial relations
policies must be flexible enough to adapt to local requirements.
!
Caution Trade unions limit the strategic choices of multinationals in three ways:
1. By influencing wage levels to the extent that cost structures may become
uncompetitive.
Let us explore in detail, how trade union limits on MNC’s strategic choices:
1. Influencing Wage Levels: Although the importance of labour costs relative to other costs is
decreasing, labour costs still play an important part in determining cost competitiveness
in most industries. The influence of unions on wage levels is important. Multinationals
that fail to successfully manage their wage levels will suffer labour cost disadvantages
that may narrow their strategic options.
2. Constraining the Ability of MNCs to Vary Employment Levels at Will: For many MNCs
operating in Western Europe, Japan, and Australia, the inability to vary employment
levels at will is more serious problem than wage levels. Many countries now have
legislation that limits considerably the ability of firms to carry out plant closure,
redundancy, or layoff programmes unless it can be shown that structural conditions make
these employment losses unavoidable. Plant closure or redundancy legislation in many
countries also frequently specifies that firms must compensate redundant employees
through specified formulae such as two weeks’ pay for each year of service. In many
countries, payments for involuntary terminations are rather substantial, especially in
comparison to those in the United States.
Multinational managers who do not take these restrictions into account in their strategic
planning may well find their options severely limited.
3. Preventing Global Integration of MNC Operations: MNCs make a conscious decision not
to integrate and rationalise their operations to the most efficient degree because to do so
could cause industrial and political problems.
Notes
Example: General Motors is an example of this “sub-optimising of integration.” GM was
alleged in the early 1980s to have undertaken substantial investments in Germany (matching its
new investments in Austria and Spain) at the demand of the German metalworkers’ union (one
of the largest industrial unions in the Western world) in order to foster good industrial relations
in Germany.
Therefore, treating industrial relations as incidental and relegating them to the specialists
in various countries, is inappropriate. In the same way as government policies need to be
integrated into strategic choices, so do industrial relations.
Self Assessment
2. …………….. factors include home and host country government policy, labour legislation,
voluntary courts, collective agreement, employee courts, employers’ federations, social
institutions.
4. Three major participants or factors of industrial relations are workers and their
organisations, management and the ……………..
6. ……………. divisions within the trade union movement factors are identified that may
underlie the historical differences in the structure of the trade unions.
7. Multinationals that fail to successfully manage their wage levels, suffer …………
disadvantages that may narrow their strategic options.
Because national differences in economic, political, and legal systems, there are different industrial
relations systems across countries, so, MNCs delegate the management of industrial relations to
their foreign subsidiaries. A policy of decentralisation does not keep corporate headquarters
from exercising some coordination over Industrial relations strategy. Corporate headquarters
will become involved in or oversee labour agreements made by foreign subsidiaries because
these agreements may affect the international plans of the firm and/or create precedents for
negotiations in other countries.
Example: The U.S. firms are less to recognise trade unions, preferred not to join employers
associations, had more highly developed and specialised personnel departments at plant level,
and tended to pay higher wages and offer more generous employee fringe benefits than local
firms.
2. Nationality of Ownership of the Subsidiary: There are differences between European and
U.S. firms in terms of headquarters involvement in industrial relations. U.S. firms tend to
exercise greater centralised control over industrial relations than do British or other
European firms. U.S. firms tend to place greater emphasis on formal management controls
and a close reporting system to ensure that planning targets are met. The foreign-owned
multinationals in Britain prefer single-employer bargaining and are more likely to assert
managerial prerogative on matters of labour utilisation. U.S. – owned subsidiaries to be
much more centralised in industrial relations decision-making than British-owned. This
is due to the more integrated nature of U.S. firms and the more ethnocentric managerial
style of U.S. firms.
4. MNC Prior Experience in Industrial Relations: European firms have tended to deal with
labour unions at industry level rather than at firm level. The opposite is more typical for
U.S. firms. In the United States, employer associations have not played a key role in
industrial relations system and firm-based industrial relations policies are the norm.
(a) Subsidiaries that are formed through acquisition of well established indigenous
firms tend to be given much more autonomy over industrial relations than are
greenfield sites set up by a multinational firm.
(b) Greater intervention would be expected when the subsidiary is of key strategic
importance to the firm and the subsidiary is young.
(c) Where the parent firm is a significant source of operation or investment funds for
the subsidiary, that is, where the subsidiary is more dependent on headquarters for
resources, there will tend to be increased corporate involvement in industrial
relations and human resource management.
6. Characteristics of the Home Product Market: An important factor is the extent of the home Notes
product market. If domestic sales are large relative to overseas operations, it is more
likely that overseas operations will be regarded by the parent firm as an extension of
domestic operations. Lack of a large home market is a strong incentive to adapt to host-
country institutions and norms. Since the implementation of the Single European Market
in 1993, there has been growth in large European-scale companies that centralise
management organisation and strategic decision-making.
Worldwide trade union membership has fallen over the past decade due to economic factors
such as reduced public sector employment, reduced employment in manufacturing industries as
a share in total employment, and increased competition. It is also associated with decentralisation
of industrial relations to business unit level, changes in governance, and legislative changes.
Example: The sharpest drop in union density (almost 36% over the past decade) has been
in central and eastern Europe, and may be explained by political and economic changes associated
with the dissolution of the Soviet bloc and the end of compulsory union membership. Union
membership decline is also linked to the introduction of new forms of work organisation,
globalisation of production, and changes in workforce structure.
Industrial disputes is the another key issue in international industrial relations. Strike-proneness
was measured via three variables – strike frequency, strike size, and strike duration. There was
no difference across the two groups of firms with regard to strike frequency, but multinational
subsidiaries did experience larger and longer strikes than local firms. This difference indicates
that foreign-owned firms may be under less financial pressure to settle a strike quickly than
local firms – possibly because they can switch production out of the country.
International industrial relations are influenced by a broad range of factors. General statements
cannot be applied to the organisation of the industrial relations function within MNCs. Rather,
different MNCs adopt different industrial relations strategies in relation to the environmental
factors peculiar to each firm.
Self Assessment
10. A policy of decentralisation does not keep corporate headquarters from exercising some
coordination over Industrial relations strategy.
11. A high degree of integration was found to be the most important factor leading to the
centralisation of the Industrial relations function within the firms.
12. A geocentric firm has to bear less influence on host-country industrial relations systems.
Notes
Caselet MNCs and Trade Union
T
rade unions’ attitudes towards MNCs and responses to their impact on collective
bargaining vary. In some countries, especially in the NMS as well as Ireland, the
Netherlands and the UK, trade unions have a generally positive view of MNCs and
welcome the inflow of foreign investment. In Poland, trade unions have in some cases
been willing to sign special deals – in particular no-strike agreements - in order to attract
investment, especially from the US and Japanese companies, echoing similar practices in
the 1980s in the UK. While the potential for employment creation is a common motivation,
a frequent additional justification in the NMS is the expectation that foreign-owned
companies might transfer into local industrial relations environments their west European
social dialogue and employee participation practices. Nevertheless, research studies raise
some doubts in this respect, as industrial relations transfers from the West seem to be the
exception rather than rule, and contingent on rather specific conditions.
By contrast, trade unions in some west European countries express negative opinions
about MNCs. In Belgium, the unions criticise MNCs for their tendency towards more
conflict-prone industrial relations, in addition to excessive flexibility and remote
management structures. In Sweden, meanwhile, trade unions are critical of MNCs’ aims to
further decentralise collective bargaining and in the industrial sector have successfully
opposed further movement in this direction. Elsewhere, trade unions have not necessarily
favoured the decentralisation of bargaining, but have accommodated pragmatically such
developments.
Source: http://www.eurofound.europa.eu/eiro/studies/TN0904049s/tn0904049s_7.htm
Trade union leaders consider the growth of multinationals as a threat to the bargaining power
of labour because of the considerable power and influence of large multinational firms. MNCs
are neither uniformly anti-union nor omnipotent and monolithic bureaucracies, their potential
for lobbying power and flexibility across national borders create difficulties for employees and
trade unions endeavouring to develop countervailing power.
There are several ways in which MNCs have an impact on trade union and employee interests.
Following are the seven characteristics of MNCs as the source of labour unions’ concern about
multinationals:
1. Formidable financial resources: This includes the ability to absorb losses in a particular
foreign subsidiary that is in dispute with a national union and still an overall profit on
worldwide operations. Union bargaining power may be threatened or weakened by the
broader financial resources of a multinational. It is true when multinational has adopted
practices of transnational sourcing and cross-subsidisation of products or components
across different countries. The economic pressure which a nationally based union can
exert upon a multinational is certainly less than would be the case if the company’s
operations were confined to one country.
2. Alternative sources of supply: This may take the form of an explicit “dual sourcing” policy
to reduce the vulnerability of the multinational to a strike by any national union. Also,
temporary switching of production in order to defeat industrial action has been utilised to Notes
some extent in the automotive industry.
3. Ability to move production facilities to other countries: For employees and trade unions,
job security may be threatened if a multinational seeks to produce abroad what could
have, or previously has been manufactured domestically. National relative advantages
provide MNCs with choice as to location of units.
7. The capacity to stage an “investment strike”: When the multinational refuses to invest
any additional funds in a plant, thus ensuring that the plant will become obsolete and
economically uncompetitive.
Trade unions claim that they have difficulty accessing decision-makers located outside the host
country and obtaining financial information. Misinformation has been central to the management
strategy of using potential investment or disinvestment in seeking changes in certain
organisations.
Example: In companies such as Heinz, Ford, Gillette, and General Motors, workers have
established that they had on occasions been misinformed by management as to the nature of
working practices in other plants.
1. International Trade Secretariats (ITSs): There are fifteen ITSs, which function as loose
confederations to provide worldwide links for the national unions in a particular trade or
industry (example, metals transport and chemicals). The secretariats have mainly operated
to facilitate the exchange of information.
Notes One of the fastest growing of the ITSs is the International Federation of Commercial,
Clerical, Professional, and Technical Employees (generally known by its French initials,
FIET), which is focused on the service sector. The long-term goal of each ITS’ is to achieve
transnational bargaining with each of the multinationals in its industry. Each ITS’ has
followed a similar programme to achieve the goal of transnational bargaining. The elements
of this program are:
Overall, the ITS have met with limited success the reasons for which attribute to:
(a) The generally good wages and working conditions offered by multinationals.
2. Lobbying for Restrictive National Legislation: On a political level, trade unions have for
many years lobbied for restrictive national legislation in United States and Europe. The
motivation for trade unions to pursue restrictive national legislation is based on a desire
to prevent the export of jobs via multinational investment policies.
Example: In the United States, the AFL-CIO has lobbied strongly in this area. A major
difficulty for unions when pursuing this strategy is the reality of conflicting national economic
interests. In times of economic downturn, this factor may become an insurmountable barrier for
trade union officials.
In 1977, the ILO adopted a code of conduct for multinationals which influential in the
drafting of OECD guidelines for multinationals. These voluntary guidelines cover
disclosure of information, competition, financing, taxation, employment and industrial
relations, and science and technology.
Notes
Notes A key section of OECD guidelines is the umbrella or chapeau clause that precedes
the guidelines themselves. This clause states that MNCs should adhere to the guidelines
within the framework of law, regulations and prevailing industrial relations and
employment practices, in each of the countries in which they operate. Employers have
understood the chapeau clause means compliance with local law superseding the guidelines,
while trade unions have interpreted this clause to mean that the guidelines are a supplement
to national law. The implication of this interpretation is significant: a firm could still be in
violation of the OECD guidelines even though its activities have complied with national
law and practice. Given the ambiguity of the chapeau clause and the fact that the OECD
guidelines are voluntary, it is likely that this issue will remain controversial.
Regional integration is a process in which states enter into a regional agreement in order to
enhance regional cooperation through regional institutions and rules. Regional integration is
association of states based upon location in a given geographical area, for the safeguarding or
promotion of the participants, an association whose terms are fixed by a treaty or other
arrangements. It is a worldwide phenomenon of territorial systems that increase the interactions
between their components and create new forms of organisation, co-existing with traditional
forms of state-led organisation at the national level.
It is the joining of individual states within a region into a larger whole. The degree of integration
depends upon the willingness and commitment of independent sovereign states to share their
sovereignty. Its objectives could range from economic to political although it has become a
political economy initiative where commercial purposes are the means to achieve broader
socio-political and security objectives. Regional integration have often focused on removing
barriers to free trade in the region, increasing the free movement of people, labour, goods, and
capital across national borders, reducing the possibility of regional armed conflict.
Regional integration initiatives should fulfil following important functions:
5. the reduction of social exclusion and the development of an inclusive civil society
8. The strengthening of the region’s interaction with other regions of the world
European Union (EU): Regional integration such as the development of the European Union
(EU) has brought significant implications for international industrial relations. In the Treaty of
Notes Rome (1957), some consideration was given to social policy issues related to the creation of the
European Community. In the EU, the terms social policy or social dimension, are used to cover
a number of issues including labour law and working conditions, aspects of employment and
vocational training, and social security.
The Social Charter of the Council of Europe came into effect in 1965. In 1987, the major objective
of the implementation of the Single European Act was to establish the Single European Market
(SEM) on December 31, 1992, in order to enhance the free movement of goods, money, and
people within the SEM. The social dimension aims to achieve a large labour market by eliminating
the barriers that restrict the freedom of movement and the right of domicile within the SEM. The
European Community Charter of the Fundamental Social Rights of Workers (often referred to
simply as the Social Charter) was introduced in 1989, and has guided the development of social
policy in the 1990s (EC, 1990).
The Social Chapter in the Treaty of Amsterdam opens with a general statement of objectives. It
then sets out the objectives for the E.U.: to support and complement the activities of the Member
States in a number of listed areas. These include improvement of working conditions and of the
working environment in the interests of workers, integration of persons excluded from the
labour market, and equality of opportunity, and at work, between men and women. However,
the Treaty excludes matters of pay, the right of association, and the right to strike or to lock out.
The European Commission department responsible for social policy is known as Directorate-
General V (often abbreviated to ‘DG V’).
Directorate General
Directorate C: is responsible for the operation of the European Social Fund in the Member
States.
Directorate D: is responsible for relations with the social partners and organisations of the
dialogue, industrial relations and labour law, coordination of social security for migrant
workers, migration policy and promotion of free movement for workers, equal
opportunities for women and men, and family policy.
Directorate E: is responsible for analysis of and research on the social situation, social
security and actions in the social field, and integration of disabled people. It also deals
with external relations, international organisations, information and publications on behalf
of the whole Directorate-General.
Contd...
health and safety at work. It also provides the permanent secretariat for the Advisory Notes
Committee of Safety, Hygiene and Health Protection at the Workplace.
Directorate G: is responsible for the management of human and financial resources of the
Directorate-General, for audit and inspection, and evaluation.
The European Works Councils (EWC) Directive was approved on September 22, 1994, and
implemented two years later. Under the terms of the Treaty of Amsterdam, this directive applies
to all EU member states. This is the first pan-European legislation that regulates collective
relationships between MNCs and employees.
1. The directive requires EWCs to be established in MNCs with at least 1,000 employees,
having 100 or more employees in each of two member States.
3. The EWC aims to enhance employee’s rights to information and consultation and provide
rights to information regarding international corporate decisions that would significantly
affect workers’ interests.
Example: In response to the EWC directive, General Motors and Heinz have subsidised
visits of worker representatives to other plants and provided information and forums for
discussion at the European level.
The EU Council of Ministers has approved the pension funds Directive that sets standards for the
prudential supervision of pension plans in the EU. The Member States will need to implement
the Directive by the middle of 2005. The Directive covers employer-sponsored, separately funded
pension plans. The Directive provides pension funds with a coherent framework to operate
within the internal market and allows European companies and citizens the opportunity to
benefit from more efficient pan-European companies and citizens the opportunity to benefit
from more efficient pan-European pension funds.
Once implemented, the Directive will ensure a high level of protection for both members and
beneficiaries of pension funds. The Directive refers to the pension plan provides as ‘Institutions
for Occupational Retirement Provision’ (IORP) who will be subject to detailed rules of operation,
including requirements to inform members and beneficiaries properly of the terms and status
of the plan, prudently calculate promised benefits and cover them with sufficient assets and give
supervisory authorities the necessary powers to monitor and supervise the plans.
The greatest barrier to implementation of the pan-European pensions is the taxation differences
among member States. The Directive does not attempt to cover taxation issues which may need
a separate and more prolonged process though the EU legislative institutions. Many member
countries’ tax laws do not recognise contributions to foreign pension plans. This creates
unfavourable tax circumstances for employees working outside their home countries and
contributing to pension plans in their host countries.
There was an impact on the jobs due to the formation of the Single European Market (SEM).
There was alarm that those member states that have relatively low social security costs would
have a competitive edge and that firms would locate in those member states that have lower
labour costs. The counter-alarm was that states with low-cost labour would have to increase
their labour costs, to the detriment of their competitiveness. There are two industrial relations
issues:
1. The movement of work from one region to another and its effect on employment levels
Notes 2. The need for trade union solidarity to prevent workers in one region from accepting pay
cuts to attract investment at the expense of workers in another region
North American Free Trade Agreement (NAFTA): NAFTA is an agreement which involves the
formation of a free trade zone between the United States, Canada and Mexico. The Canada–
United States Free Trade Agreement went into effect on January 1989, and a draft accord to create
NAFTA, which brought Mexico into the trading bloc, was announced in August 1992. The NAFTA
agreement was signed by the governments of the United States, Mexico, and Canada in December
1992, coming into force in January 1994.
NAFTA differs from the Single European Market in that it is a free trade zone and not a common
market. NAFTA deals only with the flow of goods, services, and investments among the three
trading partners. It does not address labour mobility or other common policies of the SEM. It has
introduced new institutions to process complaints, violations of labour laws, and committed
each of the three nations to introduce a set of 11 labour rights principles.
Organised labour in the United States and Canada responded to the passage of NAFTA with
substantial opposition, based on fear of job losses due to the transfer of production to Mexico to
take advantage of lower wage rates and tax enforcement of social and labour legislation. In the
case of NAFTA, jobs are able to cross borders, but workers are not. There has been – a general
lack of coordination between the labour organisations of the NAFTA countries.
The EU and NAFTA provide examples of regional integration, which present many issues for
international industrial relations. As regional integration, and interregional integration, develops
in other parts of the world, issues will continue to emerge for international industrial relations.
Self Assessment
13. Trade union leaders consider the growth of multinationals as a threat to the bargaining
power of labour.
15. NAFTA is an agreement which involves the formation of a free trade zone between the
United States, Canada, and Brazil.
Notes
Case Study Norman (I) Limited
The Company
The first wall tile manufacturing plant in India was established by Kay Pee in 1963 at
Thane in Mumbai under the name Norman tiles. The company was using the brand name
‘Norman’, a leading international tile manufacturer, Norman International Limited and
was paying royalty for the same. The Norman International Limited owned 49% equity in
this venture since its inception. With growth in sight the company set up another
manufacturing unit at Rampur in the state of Uttar Pradesh with an investment of ` 85
million in the year 1981. Initially, at Rampur unit the company was carrying out only
partial operations with semi-finished products being supplied by Thane unit. It was only
in 1984, that the company started carrying out full operations at the Rampur unit. Since,
the market for ceramic tiles started expanding, the company expanded its operations,
accordingly. The process of manufacturing wall tile was such that it needed unskilled
manpower barring few fitters and electricians. Accordingly, the company hired 400 workers
mostly uneducated and unskilled from nearby villages. Few of them were taken for the
fitter and mechanic positions. Apart from these, there were sixty staff members looking
after the other support functions. The workers were paid low wages and were employed
on temporary basis at the beginning and till 1986 most of them were not made permanent.
The human resource department was headed by R.C. Jain, who was an experienced
professional and was with the firm since its inception.
The Genesis
In 1986, the company ventured into floor tile manufacturing and set up another facility at
Rampur unit. This plant was semi-automatic as compared to the wall tile plant which
needed manual operations. The machinery of floor tiles unit was bought from Italy and
due to the nature of process some experienced workers were shifted from wall tile facility.
Slowly, two distinct groups of workers emerged based on the nature of their job and
subsequent skills required. First group was that of unskilled workers mostly associated
with manual operations and the second group was that of skilled workers looking after
technical operations. The second group was paid higher wages than the first group. This
disparity led to discontentment among workers but in the absence of union, it never came
out as an organised reaction. The first such organised attempt was made by workers in
1988, but a prompt and harsh action from management aborted the workers’ bid to form
union. However, this event drew management’s attention towards workers’ grievances
and management helped workers to form a union in 1989. The union was named “Bhartiya
Crystallisation Mazdur Sangh”. However, since most of the workers barring few technical
ones were uneducated, they were unaware of roles and responsibilities of union.
The Management started negotiations with the newly formed union and the first wage
settlement agreement was signed on January 19, 1990. In this agreement, though the
management agreed to increase wages to the extent of ` 250 per month, it linked wages to
production targets. After three months of this agreement, the union leader left the
organisation to join government service. The union was left leaderless. After some time
the workers started voicing their concern about the target-linked wages, but in the absence
of a leader their concerns could not get a voice. It was at this point that some external
labour leaders started inciting the workers. A gate meeting was organised to exploit the
situation on September 21, 1990. After this incident, the industrial relations situation
Contd...
Notes further worsened and led to a go-slow movement by workers in January 1991. This affected
the productivity of the plant severely. Due to the absence of union leadership, management
too, found it difficult to control the situation, since external leaders’ influence was very
much visible and company’s HR Manager R.C. Jain refused to talk to the outsiders. He
remained adamant and left the job in March 1991 and the go-slow by the workers continued.
In another development, the incumbent, HR Manager Arun Joshi, who took over after Jain
left converted variable DA to a fixed DA rate. Since, at that time inflation was spiralling
and the rate of DA, elsewhere, was high, the workers refused to accept this provision.
Ultimately, under pressure from external leaders as well as workers of the firm, Joshi
withdrew the fixed DA and accepted the variable DA provision.
In the meantime, K. N. Trivedi took over as the unit head on May 5, 1991. Before joining
this plant, he had served the Indian Air Force for seventeen years and was a strict
disciplinarian. The organisational situation demanded quick action to stop go-slow because
the company had market share of forty per cent in both the tile categories and the demand
for tiles was still going up. The management did not want to lose a single day’s production.
In a calculated move, the management suspended thirty five workers who were on a go-
slow. This was for the first time that any worker was suspended from the plant which
instilled a sense of fear in the minds of the workers. As a result of this, workers started
working and the productivity of the plant started showing improvement.
Meanwhile, the management had terminated some of the suspended employees who later
on moved to the labour court against management’s action on the presumption that
labour courts are generally sympathetic to the workers. At the same time, Trivedi started
dialogue with the external leaders to end the stalemate. The external leaders put pressure
on the management to reinstate the suspended workers. Management agreed to make
permanent those employees who were working with the company since its inception and
did it with immediate effect. Suspension of some of the workers was also cancelled.
Though these efforts helped management in streamlining the production, the attitude of
the workers could not be changed totally. The ownership spirit amongst workers could
not be developed.
The situation took another ugly turn in February, 1992 when the workers who were
suspended earlier tried to create disturbances in the plant. The discontent was further
fuelled by bad food provided to the workers in the unit’s canteen in March, 1992. Ultimately,
this led to formation of a new union “Bhartiya Yuva Sanitary and Crystallisation Mazdur
Sangh”. This union was not affiliated to any national labour union. However, the leaders
were under the influence of Bhartiya Mazdur Sangh (BMS). This union submitted a charter
of demands to the management. The demands included grain loan which was a contentious
issue because the company had never given any grain loan to the workers. The demands
were not accepted by the management. The workers gheraoed Trivedi but the management
did not accede to the demands and called the police to intervene.
On March 17, 1992, the workers went on strike, on the call of the union without giving any
prior notice. The management terminated seventeen workers during the strike. The strike
continued till May 5, 1992. The workers were not paid any wages during the strike period.
Since the workers were low wage earners, they were unable to continue the strike for a
longer period. The management used the situation to their advantage and accepted only
minor demands of sanctioning an advance of ` 500 to the workers. The workers accepted
the management decision and were willing to restart production. Management
reemployed the suspended workforce gradually over a period of fifteen-twenty days.
Since, the workers did not receive wages for the strike period, they had realised the
importance of their employment.
Contd...
In October, 1993, the second agreement was signed between management and the union. Notes
Between October, 1993 and December, 1996 the productivity and industrial relations were
improved. In 1996 the organisation started receiving export orders for its products. The
quality requirements for the export orders were stringent. Therefore, the organisation
decided to go in for ISO 9000 certification for their Rampur plant. The management realising
the importance of workers’ involvement in ISO 9000 certification process started training
workers on a continuous basis in June, 1996. The in-house training emphasised on house
keeping, general hygiene of the workers, standard operation procedure and awareness
about all kinds of losses. As a result of continued efforts, ISO 9002 certification was received
by the plant in January, 1997. Meanwhile, the third wage agreement was signed between
the management and the union for a period of three years in January, 1997. To reinforce
the training process, HRD cell with well-equipped in-house training tools was developed
in January, 1998. Training programmes focussed on shop-floor excellence and total
productive maintenance (TPM). Quality manual for internal use was also developed. The
goals for 2000–2001 for the plant were devised as under:
3. Control of losses
The Rampur plant of Norman had come a long way since its inception. In the words of
Trivedi, “despite all the bottlenecks, we have achieved a satisfactory level of productivity.
We still intend to continue doing so by various means. However, I want to build this plant
as a community where each member’s commitment with the plant remains high. This can
only be achieved by inculcating the ownership value. We sincerely believe that this can
only be developed by creating a community of Norman in which every member is ensured
of a minimum standard of living with all basic amenities and worry free life away from
work. We intend to do so by providing medical, educational and vocational training
facilities for their families, thereby developing trust between the management and the
workers.”
Questions
3. Was it a right strategy adopted by Jain not to recognise and encourage outside
leadership for the plant union?
4. The strategy to instil fear in the minds of workers to improve their productivity was
in the interest of the organisation. Discuss.
5. In your view, what action should have been taken by the management at various
stages to improve labour-management relations?
6. In your view, what are the thrust areas in HR strategy which may improve the
competitive strength of the workers?
Source: B D Singh, Industrial Relations: Emerging Paradigms, Excel Books, New Delhi
Trade unions opt for less ambitious strategies in dealing with multinationals.
Trade unions and the ILO will pursue these strategies and continue to lobby where possible
for the regulation of multinationals via the European Commission and the United Nations.
Healthy IR can enhance employment and further the goal of upgrading employment
quality and skills in foreign subsidiaries.
The EU aims to established minimal standards for social conditions that will safeguard the
fundamental rights of workers.
10.5 Keywords
MNC: It is a corporation or enterprise that manages production or delivers services in more than
one country.
Regional Integration: A process in which states enter into a regional agreement in order to
enhance regional cooperation through regional institutions and rules.
Social Dumping: It is a temporary movement of labour from one country to other country
where the labour cost is very high.
Trade Union: It is an organisation of workers who have banded together to achieve common
goals in key areas, such as working conditions.
Trading Bloc: It is a set of countries which engage in international trade together, and are usually
related through a free trade agreement or other association.
Wage: It is compensation, usually financial, received by a worker in exchange for their labour.
2. In what way can trade unions constrain the strategic choices of multinationals?
3. Critically examine the characteristics of multinationals that give labour unions cause for
concern.
4. Examine the response of the trade unions to multinationals. Have these responses been
successful? Justify.
5. Examine the role that has regional integration played in international IR.
6. “It is difficult to compare the industrial relations systems and behaviour across national Notes
boundaries.” Do you agree? Justify.
7. Examine the factors that affect the involvement of the MNCs headquarters in IR.
9. Explain the role of European Union in bringing significant changes in industrial relations
internationally.
10. Examine the role played by the ITSs for the national union in a particular industry.
1. Strategy 2. Institutional
3. Technological 4. Government
15. False
http://www.fafo.no/pub/rapp/675/675.htm
Notes http://www.google.co.in/url?sa=t&rct=j&q=issues%2C+responses+
of+trade+unions+to+multinational+% 2C+regional+Integration.+&source=web
&cd=5&cad=rja&ved=0CE8QFjAE &url=http%3A%2F%2Fciteseerx.ist.psu.edu%
2Fviewdoc%2Fdownload%3Fdoi%3D1 0.1.1.194.3295%26rep%3Drep1%26type
%3Dpdf&ei=wzXtUI3SC8LprAe5zoHQDA&usg= AFQjCNFLXz3WuDVif2fK3
ChzRTGH3Svowg&bvm=bv.1357316858,d.bmk
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
11.5 Summary
11.6 Keywords
Objectives
Introduction
Performance Management is a process for managing both behaviour and results of the
performance. Performance is the sum of behaviour and results and cannot be viewed as
independent of either component. It is an outcome of effective management. The most challenging
aspects for a firm operating internationally are managing the performance of its various
international facilities. Since organisations exist to achieve goals, the degree of success that
individual employees have in reaching their individual goals is important in determining
organisational effectiveness. The assessment of how successful employees have been at meeting
their individual goals, therefore, becomes a critical part of human resource management.
Performance management refers to the ongoing process of setting goals, self-assessment, manager
assessment, peer-assessment, coaching, development planning, and evaluation. It is widely
used in the business and has two forms:
1. Competitive assessment: where employees are rigorously compared against each other.
2. Coaching and development: where employees are evaluated against their own goals and
capabilities.
The basic components of international performance management are shown in Figure 11.1. It
provides a convenient starting point of the link between the multinational’s internationalisation
strategies, its goals for individuals international operations in terms of contribution to global
profitability, and individual performance management, whether PCN, TCN or HCN. This is
important since an individual’s performance is evaluated according to expectations of appropriate
outcomes and behaviour that contribute to organisational goal attainment.
Multinational’s Internationalization
Strategies and Goals
Subsidiary Goals
Performance management is the central process of the human resource cycle because it influences
the following essential processes:
1. Rewards management
An effective performance system at the strategic level depends upon the commitment of quality
management time of senior executives, including the CEO. Performance management is the
most important responsibility of HR executives in global transnational organisations.
For managing the performance of the employees, they are assigned with certain responsibilities
at the starting of the financial year based on the corporate budget and then the planning is done
to measure the effectiveness of the employees in MNCs. It includes selection of the key areas for
performance, target setting and action plan determination for achievement of the performance
and then assigning the weightage to the concerned responsibilities.
Notes
!
Caution It is of two types:
1. Off-line performance planning: this is done on the basis of certain predictions with
regards to the business goals and activities.
2. Online performance planning: this is done in terms of clear business strategy and
allocated funds.
Self Assessment
4. Performance management is the central process of the human resource cycle but does not
influence any other HR function.
The multinational has specific expectations for each of its foreign affiliates in terms of market
performance and contribution to total profits and competitiveness. When evaluating subsidiary
performance against these expectations, it is important to recognise various constraints that
may affect goal attainment. They are:
So, the consequences of such global decisions for subsidiary management must be taken
into consideration for performance evaluation.
2. Non-comparable Data: Many a time, the data obtained from subsidiaries is not
interpretable. As illustrated:
(a) Sales in Brazil may be skyrocketing but there are reports that the Brazilian
government may impose tough new exchange controls within a year, thus making
it impossible for the multinational to repatriate profits. Is the subsidiary performing
effectively?
Notes (b) Sales in Peru may be booming but headquarters management was unaware that
under Peruvian accounting rules, sales on consignment are counted as firm sales.
How should the headquarters accounting system handle these sales relative to sales
from other subsidiaries that do not consider sales on consignment as firm sales?
Physical measures of performance are easier to interpret but difficulties may still arise.
Example: Notions of adequate quality control checks can vary from one country to
another, import tariffs can distort pricing schedules, a dock strike in one country can unexpectedly
delay supply of necessary components to a manufacturing plant in another country, and local
labour laws may require full employment at plants that are producing at below capacity. These
factors can make an objective appraisal of subsidiary performance problematic and may
complicate the evaluation of individual subsidiary managers.
Example: Consider the impact on international business of major events in the last
decade such as the collapse of communist rule beginning in 1989 throughout Eastern Europe and
the former Soviet Union, the Persian Gulf War in 1991, the formation of the Single European
Market in 1992, recent market reforms in China, the hand over in 1997 of the British colony of
Hong Kong to the control of the People’s Republic of China (PRC), and the current economic
downturn in the so-called ‘tiger’ economies of South-East Asia.
Each of these events has profound implications for the global and local strategies of
multinationals operating in these countries. Because subsidiaries operate under such
volatility and fluctuation, they must tailor long-term goals to the specific situation in a
given market.
4. Separation by Time and Distance: The congruence between the multinational and local
subsidiary activities are complicated by the physical distances involved, time-zone
differences, the infrequency of contact between the corporate head-office staff and
subsidiary management, and the cost of the reporting system. Developments in
sophisticated worldwide communication systems like video telephone, teleconference,
and e-mail do not fully substitute for face-to-face contacts between subsidiary managers
and corporate staff. Meeting personally is often necessary to fully understand each person’s
situation. So, many multinational corporate managers spend a considerable amount of
time travelling in order meet expatriate and local managers in foreign locations. So, it is
imperative for HR corporate staff to take account of country-specific factors when designing
performance management systems.
5. Variable Levels of Maturity: Without the supporting infrastructure of the parent, market
development in foreign subsidiaries is generally slower and more difficult to achieve
than at home where established brands can support new products and new business areas
can be cross-subsidised by other divisions.
Example: One does not fire a Mexican manager because worker productivity is half the
American average. In Mexico, it means that this manager is working at a level three or four
times as high as the average Mexican industrial plant. The harassed Mexican manager has to live
with Mexican constraints, not European or American ones, and these can be very different. The
way we measure worker productivity is exactly the same, but the numbers come out differently Notes
because of that environmental difference.
7. Ethical and Legal Issues: Many multinationals assess performance using result-oriented
measures. It is important to assess how the subsidiary management is achieving its results.
Consideration of ethical and legal issues is significant.
8. Market Maturity: Some markets are less developed than others. Subsidiaries in these
markets where the supporting infrastructure is not available may perform much less well
in interns of sales volume than subsidiaries in more established markets. This makes any
purely bottom-line assessment of performance inappropriate.
The productivity levels of people are very different in different parts of the world. In
countries like India, infrastructural and government delays are so frustrating that a
multinational unit may not succeed in obtaining timely clearances, resulting in long
project overruns in time and cost.
So, studying the above factors it is clear that there are a number of significant constraints
that must be considered when evaluating the performance of a foreign subsidiary and
expatriates working there.
Self Assessment
6. In order to manage the turbulence of the international environment requires that long-
term goals be rigid.
7. Time-zone differences ease out the congruence between the multinational and local
subsidiary activities.
8. Autonomy granted to the subsidiary in making its own strategy and implementation,
influences its performance.
Individual performance management involves job analysis, job goals and standards, and
performance appraisal. It comprises a formal process of goal setting, performance appraisal,
and feedback.
Performance management is a process that enables the multinational to evaluate and continuously
improve individual, subsidiary unit, and corporate performance, against clearly defined, pre-
set goals and targets. Strong goal setting and appraisal are key elements of performance
management systems that may include training and development and performance related pay.
By adopting a performance management approach, multinationals are building on the
Source: http://www.scotland.gov.uk/Resource/Img/53814/0008911.gif
(a) Setting clear goals for each unit, department and every individual employee.
(b) Setting standard and measurement criteria for evaluating each type of goal.
(d) Using the outcomes of the review process to reinforce desire employee behaviour through
differential rewards and identifying training and development needs.
(e) Giving feedback to the employees.
(e) Cultural adjustment of the individual and the accompanying family members.
Notes
Figure 11.3: Variables Affecting Expatriate Performance
Cultural Adjustment—Self
—
Family
Host Environment
Headquarter’s Support
Task
Compensation Package
E xp a t r i at e
Performance
Above Figure 11.3 depicts the variables that form the basis on which the nature of the expatriate
assignment, performance management, the criteria for assessment, and other elements that
comprise an effective performance management system can be explored.
1. Compensation Package: Perceived financial benefits, along with the career progression
potential associated with an international assignment, are important motives for
assignment. The level of motivation and commitment is likely to decrease, thus affecting
performance.
2. Task: Expatriates are assigned to foreign operations to fulfill specific tasks. Four expatriate
task roles are:
(a) The chief executive officer, or subsidiary manager, oversees and directs the entire
foreign operations.
(d) The operative performance functional job tasks in an existing operational structure,
in generally lower-level, supervisory positions.
For the expatriate (role receipt) the parent company (role sender) predetermines his role
in the foreign assignment, and role expectations may be clearly communicated to the
expatriate before departure. It is found that American expatriates working in Hong Kong
exhibited similar managerial behaviour to those employees remaining in the United
States.
Notes In the absence of incentives to modify their role behaviour when abroad, it is not surprising
that the expatriates concerned performed as they did.
Communicates
Multinational role conception PCN manager
(role sender) (role recipient)
Cultural Boundary
Host-country
PCN manager’s
stakeholders
role behaviour
(role senders)
If the PCN is to identify too closely with host subsidiary concerns, he may be recalled.
Some multinationals will restrict the length of stay to no more than three years to contain
the possibility of PCN identification with local concerns. Because of the importance given
to the parent as role sender in performance evaluation, a PCN may elect to ignore role
communication sent from the host-country stakeholders if he considers that performance
evaluation is determined by how role behaviour conforms to headquarters expectation.
Cultural Boundary
Communicates
Parent company role conception TCN manager
(role sender) (role recipient)
Cultural Boundary
Host-country
stakeholders TCN manager’s
(role senders) role behaviour
Role expectations are more complex for the TCN than the PCN, because the role is defined Notes
by and performed in two countries other than the TCN’s own.
Example: A U.S. manager working for a Dutch multinational posted as a TCN in Indonesia
may face added difficulties. The American’s role behaviour may be deemed in appropriate by
both the parent (Dutch multinational) and the host nationals (Indonesians). American manager
working in Indonesia as a PCN or TCN encounters the lack of job discretion with same effect in
terms of performance developing upon strength of other intervening variables. Differing role
sender may exacerbate the situation through conflicting role expectations.
Transactional Relational
Specific, short-term, Broad, open-ended,
monetizable obligations long-term obligations
limited involvement of parties monetizable and
socio-emotional elements
The employment contract comprises two components – the transactional and the relational
– contained within a broader social contract. The social contract represents an implicit
contract to execute the employment according to a set of values, beliefs and norms. The
transactional contract comprises the specific, short-term, monetisable obligations and the
relational contract is characterised by broad, open-ended, long-term obligations based on
both exchanges around monetisable elements (example, pay for service) and socio-
emotional elements (example, loyalty and support).
The relational element of the employment contract is connected to the concept of the
psychological contract. The “beliefs that individuals hold regarding promises made,
accepted, and relied upon between themselves and another.” Violation of the psychological
contract occurs when an individual feels that the organisation has not fulfilled its obligations
in return for the efforts and contributions made by the individual. Perceived violation has
a negative effect on commitment and loyalty to the organisation. The way in which the
expatriate and their family are received and supported by subsidiary is also important.
Therefore, it may be concluded that headquarters support in the foreign location is a more
powerful explanatory variable in expatriate performance than is generally recognised.
4. Host Environment: The international context – with its differing societal, legal, economic,
technical, and physical demands – can be a major determinant of expatriate performance.
So, expatriate performance should be placed within its international as well as its
Notes organisational context. Therefore, the five major constraints identified in multinational
strategy for goal setting for the subsidiary are important considerations strategy
performance management. The type of operation to which the expatriate is assigned is
important.
The stage of the international business will influence the success of the expatriate. An
expatriate overseeing the establishment of a new facility in a foreign country, especially
in a developing or emerging market, will face different challenges and constraints than
one who is posted in a mature operation.
Adjustment
Phase 4
Phase 1
Phase 3
The concept of an adjustment cycle or curve is helpful in demonstrating the typical phases.
The U-curve is based, on psychological reactions to the assignment and comprises certain
phases. Phase 1 begins with reactions prior to the assignment-the expatriate may experience
a range of positive and negative emotions such as excitement, anxiety, fear of the unknown,
sense of adventure, etc. There can be an upswing of mood upon arrival in the assignment
country that produces the ‘honeymoon’ or ‘tourist’ phase.
Then, as the novelty wears off, realities of everyday life in the foreign location begin to
intrude, homesickness sets in, and a downswing may commence a feeling that the party is
over which can create negative appraisals of the situation and the location leading to a
period of crisis (Phase 2).
This can be a critical time, and how the individual copes with the psychological adjustment
at this phase has an important outcome in terms of success or failure. Once past his crisis
point, as the expatriate comes to terms with the demands of the new environment, there is
a pulling up (Phase 3) as the person begins to adjust to the new environment. This levels- Notes
off over time described as healthy recovery (Phase 4).
Expatriate and his family members undergo these cycles individually but not all members
of the family face the same mood at the same time. Certain personality factors along with
support from headquarters and spouse, and pre-departure training can shorten the period
of depression and thus help in improving the performance.
Example: In the study of American managers in Japan, Korea, Taiwan, and Hong Kong,
it is found there is a high correlation between spouse and expatriate adjustment. Recognising
that cultural adjustment is a major problem when bringing HCNs (including Americans) into its
home operations, the Norwegian multinational, Norsk Hydro, has developed a family
monitoring programme. Supervised by Corporate Expatriate Services staff, Norsk Hydro
employees volunteer to ‘adopt’ a visiting family. The volunteers are generally employees who
have worked abroad as expatriates and thus have an understanding of what it is like to move a
family unit into another country.
It is the feedback that comes from all around an employee. “360” refers to the 360 degrees
in a circle, with an individual figuratively in the center of the circle. Feedback is provided
by subordinates, peers, and supervisors. It also includes a self-assessment feedback from
external sources such as customers and suppliers or other interested stakeholders. It is also
called multi-rater feedback, multisource feedback, or multisource assessment.
Upward feedback is a feedback where managers are given feedback by their direct reports
or a traditional performance appraisal where the employees are most often reviewed
only by their managers.
Data from performance management appraisal process is often used to determine pay and
promotion, and training and development requirements. There are differences in the way this
process is handed within companies.
Example: In Germany and Sweden, it is common for employees to have input into job
goals setting, whereas in other countries such as the United States, job goals tend to be assigned.
1. Performance Criteria: Hard, soft, and contextual goals are used as the basis for performance
criteria.
(a) Hard goals are objective, quantifiable, and can be directly measured such as return-
on-investment, market share, etc.
(c) Contextual goals attempt to take into consideration factors that result from the
situation in which performance occurs.
Notes that are difficult to quantify such as leadership skills but their appraisal is somewhat
subjective and in the expatriate context more complicated due to cultural exchanges and
clashes. An appraisal system that uses hard, soft, and contextual criteria builds on the
strengths of each while minimising their disadvantages using multiple criteria wherever
possible is recommended.
2. Who Conducts the Performance Appraisal?: Employees are appraised by their immediate
superiors, and this can pose problems for subsidiary managers. They work in countries
geographically distant, yet are evaluated by superiors back at headquarters who are not in
the position to see on a day-to-day basis how the expatriate performs in a particular
situation.
Example: The majority of U.S. firms reported annual appraisal practices. The U.S. firms
using annual appraisal systems were more likely to use standard appraisal forms and hard
criteria.
The organisational context is comprised of the nature of the job, the organisational structure, a
standard performance management system, top-management support, size of the receiving unit
(subsidiary), and the style and skills of the manager and subsidiary employees.
Example: In Nokia, the organisational structure emerged as important. Nokia has adopted
a global matrix form that prevails at the top-management level of the multinational as an
overarching structure.
However, in some divisions, and particularly at lower organisational levels, a traditional line- Notes
management organisation remains. Employees within these different organisational
configurations were managed differently.
Caselet Performance Appraisal at Pepsi-Cola International
P
epsi-Cola International (PCI), with operations in over 150 countries, has devised a
common performance appraisal system that focuses on motivating managers to
achieve and maintain high standards of performance. Administrative consistency
is achieved through the use of a performance appraisal system of five feedback
mechanisms—instant feedback, coaching, accountability based performance appraisals,
development feedback, and a human resource plan.
The common system provides guidelines for performance appraisal yet allows for
modification to suit cultural differences. For example, the first step—instant feedback—is
based on the principle that any idea about any aspect of the business or about an individual’s
performance is raised appropriately and discussed in a sensitive manner. The Instant
Feedback message can be delivered in any culture; the important thing is not how it is
done but that it is done.
In practice of PCI, the successful delivery of Instant Feedback requires some adjustment to
local cultures. Americans use it because it fits the fast-paced way of doing business. In
most Asian cultures, feedback may be tough and direct but is never given in public; nor, in
some Asian cultures, does head-nodding during instant feedback signify agreement, only
that the message has been heard: Some Latinos will argue very strongly if they do not
agree with the feedback, and some employees, Indian nationals, for example, will insist
on a great deal of specificity. The purpose of Instant Feedback is always to improve
business performance, not to criticise cultural styles. Using this system, PCI tries to balance
the cultural and administrative imperatives of successfully managing the performance of
a diverse workforce.
Source: http://www.whatishumanresource.com/performance-appraisal-at-pepsi-cola-international
Self Assessment
10. Individual performance management involves job ………..., job goals and standards, and
performance appraisal.
Notes 11. Performance can be viewed as a combination of several variables such as motivation,
ability, working conditions, clarity of goals and ……….., and expectations.
12. ……….. plays an important role in determining the performance of the expatriate.
Example: In Japan, it is important to avoid direct confrontation to “save face,” and this
custom affects the way in which the performance appraisal is conducted. A Japanese manager
cannot directly point out a work-related problem or error committed by a subordinate.
One way to overcome the dilemma of cultural adaptation is to use host-country nationals to
assist in devising a suitable system for appraising the local staff in the subsidiary and to advice
on the conduct of the appraisal.
Parent-company role conception is communicated to the HCN, but it crosses the cultural
boundary, as does feedback expressed as the HCN’s role behaviour. The HCN receives role
expectations and enacts role behaviours in his own cultural environment. For subsidiary staff
below the top-management level, one would expect the local behavioural norms of work
behaviour.
While some companies are developing information systems to assist in performance appraisal,
the widespread use of computer-generated data is hampered by the legal constraints imposed
by some host governments or by concerns about personal privacy.
2. Weight the evaluation more towards the on-site manager’s appraisal than the home-site
manager’s distant perceptions of the employee’s performance.
3. Modify the normal performance criteria used for that particular position to fit the overseas
position and characteristics of that particular locale.
4. If the home-site manager does the actual written appraisal, they may use a former expatriate
from the same overseas location to provide the background advice during the appraisal
process.
So, it is evident that the performance appraisal as a process is indeed very complex due to the
international environment apart from the cultural connotations.
Notes An international survey found that worker performance appraisals featured the
U.S. cultural concept of meritocracy, which emphasises fairness and a short-term orientation.
In other cultures, meritocracy is not commonly involved in performance appraisal, which
may emphasise other factors such as family ties, social status, and perceived loyalty to the
manager or the employing institution. On a comparative basis, Asians tend to share
intense loyalties to their work groups and employing institutions. Performance is directed
Contd...
toward group success, not individual success. Individual appraisals often conflict with this Notes
group-orientation, causing serious personnel problems.
By way of comparison, performance appraisals in the U.S. are usually conducted once a
year; but, in Japan, developmental appraisal is usually conducted every month and
evaluation appraisal is performed after 12 years. Feedback in the U.S. process is direct and
probably in writing, but the Japanese feedback is subtle and given orally. U.S. employees
tend to present their own rebuttal to the feedback, but Japanese employees never rebut. In
the U.S. appraisal process, praise is given individually, but Japanese praise is given to the
group. Research has also found that U.S. workers react more favourably to individual
performance feedback than English workers do.
Task Taking the example of Tata-Corus, examine the parameters on which the HR manager
will manage the performance of the expatriates in host-country.
Example:
1. Exxon: The Compensation and Executive Development (COED) system at Exxon is designed
to ensure a disciplined approach to the development of managerial talent for the company.
The system is directed from the top, where the COED committee is headed by the CEO,
and is made up of members of Exxon’s board. The committee is in-charge of reviewing the
development and placement of the top 250 Exxon executives (many of them expatriates).
Meeting nearly every Monday, the COED committee needs to ensure that there is a continual
flow of managerial talent for the company and that all positions have back-up candidates.
The committee then compares the performance of executives and makes decisions according
to their future development needs.
There is also a COED system within each of the Exxon subsidiaries, where the president of
each subsidiary has his own COED committee, similar to the one at the head office. This
enables the COED system to reach the top 2,000 managers at Exxon. In discussion with
senior Exxon managers, it is rather striking to hear the universal acclaim given to the
system. Most agree that the system accounts for Exxon’s overall success.
2. General Motors: General Motors is another company with an equally strong tradition of
performance management.
At General Motors, the Supreme Court of Executive Review has included the top six
executives in the company. During the week-long sessions in the board room of the
Detroit headquarters each February and July, the members spend long days and nights
listening to the analysis of more than 600 managers from each of GM’s ten vice-presidents
and group executives. A variety of questions are covered to get an accurate picture of
where the individual stands in his career development.
15. Expatriate appraisal can be effective in stipulating the assignments’ difficulty level.
Case Study Skanska
Company Background
Skanska was founded in 1887 as manufacturer of cement products. The organisation rapidly
expanded into a construction company and within 10 years its first international order
was received. Currently Skanska offers a broad variety of construction-related services
and project development. Its mission is to develop, build and maintain the physical
environment for living, traveling and working. By 2005 Skanska’s annual turnover
amounted to 124 667 million SEK. Skanska has approximately 54 000 employees around
the globe and mainly in its home market, Sweden and the Scandinavian countries, the US,
UK, Poland, the Czech Republic and Argentina. Although Skanska’s operations in its
home market are fairly decentralised, the operations outside of these markets are run
from the parent company by the international division.
The growth in Sweden has been followed by expansion internationally. In the mid-fifties
the company made a significant move on the international market. Its technical competence
and its ability to adjust in foreign environments was a key to the success. These skills were
widely utilised when Skanska moved into markets of Africa and the Middle East in the
late sixties and Poland and USSR in the seventies. As a result of its ability to adjust in
foreign markets Skanska is often considered as a local company by the locals. The motive
for expanding internationally has for a number of years been to guarantee a stable growth
by spreading the risks. The international division strives toward a yearly turnover of
2000 – 3000 million SEK by having approximately six projects on a yearly basis. A criterion
for one single project is that it should have a turnover of at least 1 000 million SEK.
Performance Evaluation
The two primary objectives for Skanska’s international projects are to build fast and make
as much money as possible. Moreover, almost every goal that Skanska sets up has the
characteristics of hard goals. Mr. Ousbäck claims that these goals are mainly directed towards
the whole project and not so much towards individuals and as a result the goals are settled
with high expectations. Beside these primary goals Skanska develops several secondary
goals that aim towards expatriates in leader positions. All goals concerning international
projects are developed in the home-country and then further mediated to the project
managers. Moreover, the planning of the entire project is carried out in the home-country.
However, these plans are frequently changed depending on how things evolve during the
actual project and as a result new goals could be developed.
The evaluation process of the expatriates’ performances is prepared and conducted by his/
her immediate manager once a year. Furthermore, Skanska utilises a strategy where one
HR representative interviews the expatriate at least twice a year. Mr Ousbäck claims that
Contd...
this is done in order to gain information how things are running and how the expatriate Notes
is managing his/her work tasks.
The typical evaluator for the expatriate is the immediate manager, because he/she possesses
useful knowledge and information in order to perform a qualitative evaluation.
Nonetheless, when the entire project is evaluated Skanska utilises the evaluation process
through a manager from the human resource department. During the evaluation process
of the expatriates there are two people involved, the immediate manager and the project
manager. Apart from the expatriation evaluation the project manager further evaluates
different work groups in order to gather information how the situation in different groups
are and if some people do not get along they could be transferred between groups. Finally,
the immediate manager has a meeting with the project manager to discuss the expatriate
and his/her performances.
When evaluating and interviewing the expatriates Skanska sometimes finds out that the
work group has unresolved problems. These often occur due to the intimate nature of
living within the camp and for the fact that people do not always get along. In order to
solve these sorts of problems the company sometimes has to relocate or send home a few
expatriates. Evidence shows that expatriates who originate from sparsely populated areas
in Sweden are those who most successfully manage to adapt to the life in camp. Mr.
Ousbäck explains this by claiming that they have experience of living under similar
circumstances and are therefore accustomed to a situation where everyone knows
everything about everyone.
Skanska does not change its evaluation strategy for different projects because each project has
the same organisation and also the same evaluation process.
Question
Source: epubl.ltu.se/1402-1552/2007/005/LTU-DUPP-07005-SE.pdf
11.5 Summary
The multinational has specific expectations for each of its foreign affiliates in terms of
market performance and contribution to total profits and competitiveness.
Individual performance management involves job analysis, job goals and standards, and
performance appraisal. It comprises a formal process of goal setting, performance appraisal,
and feedback.
Notes Data from performance management appraisal process is often used to determine pay and
promotion, and training and development requirements.
One way to overcome the dilemma of cultural adaptation is to use host-country nationals
to assist in devising a suitable system for appraising the local staff in the subsidiary and to
advice on the conduct of the appraisal.
11.6 Keywords
Competitive Assessment: It is the process where employees are rigorously compared against
each other.
Development: It is the framework for helping employees develops their personal and
organisational skills, knowledge, and abilities.
Off-line Performance Planning: It is done on the basis of certain predictions with regards to the
business goals and activities.
Online Performance Planning: It is done in terms of clear business strategy and allocated funds.
Performance Management: It is a process for managing both behaviour and results of the
performance.
4. Being the corporate HR, examine the criteria you will use for performance appraisal of
international employees.
6. “The support provided by the headquarters to the expatriate and his family is an important
performance variable.” Do you agree? Justify.
7. Develop an integrated model for the management of the expatriate performance in your
organisation taking in consideration all the critical variables affecting it.
8. Explain the relevance of the hard, soft and contextual criteria in performance management.
9. “Cultural adjustments are the important determinants of the expatriate job performance”.
Justify.
10. Analyse the major constraints which the MNCs faces in performance management of its Notes
employees internationally.
1. False 2. True
3. True 4. False
5. True 6. False
7. False 8. True
15. True
http://www.scribd.com/doc/10421764/International-Performance-Management
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
12.5.4 Implementation
12.6 Summary
12.7 Keywords
Objectives
Introduction
The rise of globalisation has exponentially increased the market for cross border M&A. In 1996
alone there were over 2000 cross border transactions worth a total of approximately $256 billion.
Due to the complicated nature of cross border mergers and acquisitions (M&A), the vast majority
of cross border actions have unsuccessful companies seek to expand their global footprint and
become more agile at creating high-performing businesses and cultures across national
boundaries. Mergers of companies with headquarters in the same country are also a type of
cross-border Merger.
For example, when Boeing acquires McDonnell Douglas, the two American companies must
integrate operations in dozens of countries around the world. This is just as true for other
supposedly “single country” mergers, such as the $27 billion dollar merger of Swiss drug
makers Sandoz and Ciba-Geigy (now Novartis).
Mergers and acquisitions refers to the aspect of corporate strategy, corporate finance and
management dealing with the buying, selling and combining of different companies that can
aid, finance, or help a growing company in a given industry grow rapidly without having to
create another business entity.
An acquisition is the buying of one company (the ‘target’) by another. It is also known as a
takeover or a buyout. An acquisition may be friendly or hostile.
2. In hostile acquisition, the takeover target is unwilling to be bought or the target’s board
has no prior knowledge of the offer.
3. When a smaller firm will acquire management control of a larger or longer established
company and keep its name for the combined entity, it is called reverse takeover.
4. When a deal enables a private company that has strong prospects and is eager to raise
financing buys a publicly listed shell company, usually one with no business and limited
assets to get publicly listed in a short time period, it is called reverse merger.
Achieving acquisition success has proven to be very difficult as it is a complex process with
many dimensions influencing its outcome:
1. The buyer buys the shares and control of the target company it purchases. Ownership
control of the company conveys effective control over the assets of the company.
Simultaneously, it carries with it all of the liabilities accrued by that business over its past
and all of the risks that company faces in its commercial environment.
2. The buyer buys the assets of the target company for which they pay cash to the target
company. The cash the target receives from the sell-off is paid back to its shareholders by
dividend or through liquidation. This type of transaction leaves the target company as an
empty shell, if the buyer buys out the entire assets.
3. A buyer often structures the transaction as an asset purchase to “cherry-pick” the assets
that it wants and leave out the assets and liabilities that it does not. This can be particularly
important where foreseeable liabilities may include future, unquantified damage awards
such as those that could arise from litigation over defective products, employee benefits
or terminations, or environmental damage.
4. A disadvantage of this structure is the tax that many jurisdictions, particularly outside the
United States, impose on transfers of the individual assets, whereas stock transactions can
frequently be structured as like-kind exchanges or other arrangements that are tax-free or
tax-neutral, both to the buyer and to the seller’s shareholders.
!
Caution Merger is a combination of two companies into one larger company. It is
commonly voluntary and involves stock swap or cash payment to the target. A merger
can resemble a takeover but result in a new company name (often combining the names of
the original companies) and in new branding. There are various types of mergers:
1. Horizontal merger: Two companies that are in direct competition and share similar
product lines and markets (example: Sirius/XM)
Notes 3. Market-extension merger: Two companies that sell the same products in different
markets (example: GTE and Bell Atlantic into Verizon).
5. Co generic: Mergers in the same industries and taking place at the same level of
economic activity-exploration, production or manufacturing wholesale distribution
or retail distribution to the ultimate consumer. Example, Prudential’s acquisition of
Bache and Company
6. Conglomerate: Mergers between the unrelated business or two companies that have
no common business areas.
Did u know? Accretive mergers are those in which an acquiring company’s earnings per
share (EPS) increase. An alternative way of calculating this is if a company with a high
price to earnings ratio (P/E) acquires one with a low P/E.
Dilutive mergers are a merger whereby a company’s EPS decreases. The company will be
one with a low P/E acquiring one with a high P/E.
Self Assessment
1. Ownership control of the company conveys effective control over the …….. of the company.
4. When a smaller firm will acquire management control of a larger or longer established
company and keep its name for the combined entity, it is called reverse ………..
5. When a ………… company that has strong prospects and is eager to raise financing buys a
publicly listed company may be with no business and limited assets, is called reverse
merger.
1. In order to gain access to global markets like Ranbaxy buyout of Terepia has given the
buyer access to high growth markets like Romania and Eastern Europe.
2. To gain economies of scale in operations which means the combined company can reduce
its fixed costs by removing duplicate departments or operations, lowering the costs of the
company relative to the same revenue stream, thus increasing profit margins.
3. To increase their market share, this in turn increases their revenue. The buyer by absorbing
a major competitor will be able to increase its market power by capturing increased
market share to set prices.
Notes
Example: Videocon’s acquisition of Thompson gave it a strong presence in the color
picture tubes market. That will be complemented by the Daewoo’s presence in areas like high-
definition television and digital television.
Example: Tata Tea’s buyout of Tetley gave it a foothold in the UK market. The deal with
Claceau will allow Tetley to enter the US market and gave Claceau a change to tap the UK
market.
Example: Tata Steel’s buyout of Corus makes it a global top 5 player and reduces its risk
to fluctuating prices. Rather it could also control the prices now.
7. Chances to be a global company through mergers and acquisitions is the motive for most
of the firms.
Example: ONGC with the acquisitions of the oil-fields in Brazil and Syria is now a
serious contender in the global oil and gas space.
8. Resources are unevenly distributed across firms and the interaction of target and acquiring
firm resources can create value through either overcoming information asymmetry or by
combining scarce resources.
9. Vertical integration occurs when an upstream and downstream firm merges (or one acquires
the other). It internalises an externality problem.
10. It helps in the reduction of the tax burden as profitable company can buy a loss maker to
use the target’s loss as their advantage by reducing their tax liability.
Example: In the United States and many other countries, rules are in place to limit the
ability of profitable companies to “shop” for loss making companies, limiting the tax motive of
an acquiring company.
Caselet Ranbaxy and Daiichi Merger
D
aiichi Sankyo Co. Ltd. signed an agreement to acquire 34.8% of Ranbaxy
Laboratories Ltd. from its promoters. Daiichi Sankyo expects to increase its stake
in Ranbaxy through various means such as preferential allotment, public offer
Contd...
Notes and preferential issue of warrants to acquire a majority in Ranbaxy, that is, at least 50.1%.
After the acquisition, Ranbaxy will operate as Daiichi Sankyo’s subsidiary but will be
managed independently under the leadership of its current CEO and Managing Director
Malvinder Singh.
The main benefit for Daiichi Sankyo from the merger is Ranbaxy’s low-cost manufacturing
infrastructure and supply chain strengths. Ranbaxy gains access to Daiichi Sankyo’s research
and development expertise to advance its branded drugs business. Daiichi Sankyo’s strength
in proprietary medicine complements Ranbaxy’s leadership in the generics segment and
both companies acquire a broader product base, therapeutic focus areas and well distributed
risks. Ranbaxy can also function as a low-cost manufacturing base for Daiichi Sankyo.
Ranbaxy, for itself, gains smoother access to and a strong foothold in the Japanese drug
market. The immediate benefit for Ranbaxy is that the deal frees up its debt and imparts
more flexibility into its growth plans. Most importantly, Ranbaxy’s addition is said to
elevate Daiichi Sankyo’s position from #22 to #15 by market capitalisation in the global
pharmaceutical market.
Source: ipfrontline.com
Self Assessment
6. Motives behind merger and acquisition can be to gain economies of sale in operations.
8. Chances to be a global company through mergers and acquisitions is the motive for most
of the firms.
9. Vertical integration occurs when an upstream and downstream firm merges (or one acquires
the other).
10. Merger and acquisition can help in the reduction of the tax burden.
M&A are very risky when done internationally as here are various reasons for the same:
1. It takes time to understand the global markets and companies often have to rely on the
information provided by the secondary sources which may not be necessarily authentic.
4. There are cultural integration issues which play a major role in adding risks to the
international M&A different languages and sellers employees having new owners could
be major hurdles.
5. Economic downturn in the global markets plays havoc with the buyers and will severely
affects the business prospects and forecasts.
Making outbound deals work can prove a minefield. The study reveals the following:
1. Sometimes it’s difficult for a company to digest the fact that a company from a developing
country wants to acquire them. They may fear that the Indian economy is overheated and
worry about impact of a slowdown in India.
2. Foreigners are looked at with suspicion, and Indians particularly as third-world losers in
some countries.
3. As ticket sizes increase from $1 billion to $10 billion, there could be a crunch when it
comes to financing such deals.
4. There is a risk of customers and suppliers jumping ship when a foreign company acquires
a local company.
5. Cultural issues are the biggest challenge for any cross-border acquisition. They can make
or break a deal.
2. Approach the worker counsel: take them into confidence and assure them of the growth
prospects.
3. Spend time on pre-deal integration planning which could even reduce the deal size.
5. Keep a close watch on competition. They may take advantage of the situation by ramping
up production and trying to eat into market share.
Indian companies are using acquisitions as a strategy to get a global footprint. M&A is a great
vehicle to put up a global outpost virtually overnight. A flurry of M&As has pitch forked some
Indian companies into the global league.
Tata-Corus isn’t just a one-off an Indian business house thinking, and acting big, Videocon
Industries’ $ 731 million bid for Daewoo Electronics, Dr. Reddy’s acquisition of Betapharm in
Germany for $ 572 million, Ranbaxy’s $ 324 million buy-out of Terapia in Romania, and Suzlon
Energy’s $ 565 million purchase of Hansen Transmissions of Belgium are just some instances of
Indian companies willing to shell out top dollar for instant access to foreign markets.
A host of mid and small cap firms in industries ranging from textiles, consumer durables, fast
moving consumer goods and telecom to energy, automobiles, auto components and information
technology are participating in the rush to cut an outbound deal. In 2005, the total number of
outbound deals was 126, generating a total deal value of $ 4.3 billion. And during 2006 the value
of the 175 outbound deals was nearly $ 20 billion.
Task Critically analyse the acquisitions which Tata Chemicals has made to establish the
global footmark.
12. ………… issues are the biggest challenge for any cross-border acquisition.
JV is a strategic business alliance for conducting the business globally. It is a separate legal
organisational entity, controlled jointly by its partners and created by the investment of two or
more parent firms.
Example: Ranbaxy has several JVs across the world in countries like Japan and South
Africa. HCL Technologies still take the JV route, one of the few large IT services around such
collaborations. The Delhi-headquarter IT services giant has had several JVs with companies like
Deutsche Bank, Jones Apparel and NEC.
The crucial factors for the success of a JV are what each partner brings to the table, how
complementary their respective skills are, and the understanding that the partners have about
each other’s needs. Factors that leads to the success of the joint ventures are:
2. Is helps the company to entry into new domains. An Indian player can enter or beef up his
domain expertise with the help of a foreign partner who has been in the space. JVs are a
back door route to client acquisitions.
3. Easy to acquire the local knowledge. Instead of reinventing the wheel, companies can ride
on the experience of a local player who knows the ropes in foreign markets.
4. Hiring people is an easier proposition in a joint venture if the local company has a good
reputation in the foreign market.
Example: The Chennai-based Sundaram Fasteners Ltd. (SFL) traditionally has not been
a great believer in JVs. But in 2004, the leading auto ancillary manufacturer entered into a JV
with Bleistahl Productions Gabh, Germany, to manufacture value chain parts in India. SFL
invested 76% of the equity capital and Bleistahl chipped in with the rest. It was a first SFL and
found that Bleistahl shared its vision of India being an outsourcing hub for manufacturing. In
addition, Bleistahl agreed to transfer its assets, including production facilities to the JV. Bleistahl
also chose to focus on marketing, allowing SFL to concentrate on its core manufacturing strength.
So, SFL is ensured of a steady increasing export turnover and not worry about off take, sales and
people aspects. SFL example is unique because it allows the company to target international
markets by manufacturing out of India with some help from an overseas partner.
Most JVs are signposts that Indian companies use while exploring global markets. JV allows one
to leverage the strengths of the partner who is well aware of the market dynamics and knows
the rules of the game. In 2002, when Ranbaxy decided to enter Japan, the world’s second largest
pharmaceutical market, they decided to tie up with Nippon Chemiphar Limited of Japan to
form a JV called Nihon Pharmaceutical Industry, Japan is amongst the most regulated
pharmaceutical markets. Local knowledge is the key to success in Japan. The distribution system
is very different in Japan. Other than language issues, in Japan, doctors dispense drugs. To
address the market, a well-connected local distribution partner is almost a prerequisite. Japan Notes
has also a unique pharmaceutical pricing system where the government reimburses medical
agencies for drugs at an officially set price irrespective of the actual purchasing price. The
alliance with Japan provided Ranbaxy a platform to gain experience of the Japanese regulatory
framework and market environment.
Greenfield opportunity refers to a marketplace that is completely untapped and free for
the taking. It is one of the market entry strategies being used by the companies to enter
into the foreign markets. Unlike a JV, where the wealth of knowledge comes from the
foreign partner, the experience of learning from scratch can be rewarding in the long run.
An Indian company can embed itself far deeper in a foreign market with organic growth.
A lone ranger foray will help a company maintain or adapt its organisation culture far
easier than in the case of an acquisition where a company will have to tinker or make do
worth what it acquires. If the local regulations are not well understood, companies can
face a tough time with the authorities. Also, hiring staff can be an issue if the Indian player
is not a removed one.
TCS wanted to enter China not as a JV, or as an acquisition. TCS wanted to learn China by
itself. The company considered a few acquisitions before deciding to go on its own in
China. In June 2002, TCS started its operations by setting up a wholly owned foreign
enterprise in China. Headquartered in Shanghai and with its delivery centre in Hangzhou,
TCS today employees 600 people in China, 95% of who are locals. TCS today knows how
to hire, fire in China. It has an understanding of how the market works there because TCS
started ground-up in China. That’s the great thing about starting from the scratch, the
progress might be painfully slow, and at times with pitfalls, but the learning is immense.
1. Essel Propack Acquisitions: Essel Propack, its products being laminated tubes used to
package toothpastes and medicines, is one of India’s few companies with overseas clients,
overseas bases, and overseas employees. The company has manufacturing facilities in 14
countries through 24 plants in geographies like China, the US, the UK, Russia, Germany,
Mexico, Columbia, Venezuela, Philippines, Indonesia, Egypt, Nepal and Singapore, besides
India.
The company has been using a strategy of acquisitions and organic growth in foreign
geographies to expand its footprint. Established in 1984, Essel made its first international
foray with a joint venture in Egypt to manufacture laminated tubes. In 1997, the company
formed a wholly-owned subsidiary in Guangazhou, China. The big move came in 2000,
when Essel acquired the tubing operations of the Propack group, which was the fourth
largest laminated tube manufacturer globally. Propack had operations in China, the
Philippines and Columbia, Venezuela, Indonesia and Mexico, which immediately propelled
Essel into the big league. In 2003, the company set up a manufacturing plant at Danville in
the US to supply laminated tubes to Proctor and Gamble’s North American operations.
Notes 2. Tata Steel: Since mid to late 90s, British Steel mandated a well-known global investment
bank with a specific brief to scout around for opportunities in the Indian subcontinent.
One proposal the bank apparently made to British Steel involved picking up a majority
stake in the country’s largest private sector steel maker, Tata Steel. The deal did not
materialise, and British Steel went on to merge with Koninklijke Hoogovens of the
Netherlands in October 1999. Together they formed Corus, the same company that Tata
Steel recently agreed to buy for $8 billion.
Tata Steel-Corus transaction is best evidence of the hunger of Indian promoters to hog the
global stage. It’s also a confirmation of how one acquisition can transform the acquirer
from a distant also-ran into a global giant to reckon with. From the mid-fifties in the
global steel ranking, Tata Steel has pole-vaulted into the league of the top five steel
producers worldwide. It reduces its risk to fluctuating prices. In fact, it could also control
prices now.
In the case of the Singapore-based NatSteel acquisition, Tata Steel had to integrate
operations spread across seven different countries. It started out by creating platforms
where learnings could be shared between the companies. Tata Steel is superior in steel
making while SatSteel had better products and solutions for the construction sector. In
both the NatSteel and Thailand-based Millennium Steel acquisitions Tata Steel retained
the top management. The Tatas also succeeded in keeping back the CEOs and all employees,
something that would not have gone unnoticed when Corus Steel was making up its mind
on Tata Steel’s merger offer.
3. Tata Tea: Tata Tea’s buyout of Tetley gave it a foothold in the UK market. The deal with
Glaceau will allow Tetley to enter the US market and give Glaceau a chance to tap the UK
market. When Tata Tea zeroed in on bottled water marketer Glaceau in a landmark $677
million deal, the company’s top brass glanced over a host of options. It scanned the market
and looked through many companies.
For a group with a stated objective of growing via the inorganic route, the Tatas have
mastered the art of acquiring companies overseas, be it new business or those which are
several times their own size. The key is to lock in the commitment of the target company’s
management towards future growth. Locking in management commitment has been the
mantra of success for Tata Tea in its acquisition of Tetley, Jemca, Good Earth, Eight O’ clock
Coffee and recently, Glaceau.
The Tatas have always opted for negotiated acquisition. They plan the entire integration
process during the negotiation phase with emphasis on constant communication between
the top management of both companies. They work with the management of target
companies to identify areas of synergy and then set up joint teams for each of the identified
areas to execute on the game plan. The objective is to show results in terms of operational
improvements and cost savings.
Self Assessment
13. JV is a separate legal organisational entity, controlled jointly by its ………. and created by
the investment of two or more parent firms.
Despite the goal of performance improvement, results from mergers and acquisitions (M&A)
are often disappointing. M&A performance is a multi-dimensional function. For a successful
deal, the following key success factors should be taken into account:
Since, M&A involves cross-border deals which vary in national cultures, work behaviour of
employees, their attitude, perception, expectation and relationship dynamics which are modified
and altered. So, whenever a company plans out a cross-cultural deal, it has to take in account the
cultural differences of the concerned company and thus, the cultural pre-disposition of the
employees therein. In such deals, the organisational and corporate culture plays a major role in
designing the managerial attitude, decision-making styles, hierarchy pattern in the organisation,
the policies and procedures in the company, etc.
The four dimensions of the national culture – Power distance, uncertainty avoidance,
individualism and masculinity plays a grate role in determining the employee behaviour in a
cross border deal. Power dimensions determine the nationality on certain issues like preference
for centralisation, hierarchical level for the decision making, etc. Uncertainty avoidance guides
the preference for the number of hierarchical levels and rigidity of the organisational systems.
Individualism is the tendency of the people to look themselves and their immediate families
only. This trait is very high in Americans where they value the individual decision over group
decision. These cultural differences led to the failure on the part of the companies to understand
each other, respect the differences in culture which ultimately leads to the failure of the cross-
border deals. So, based on these traits, the HR policy in international deals is affected.
In order to contribute to the success of any M&A deal, HR must be involved in business critical
decisions at the onset and contribute thoughts on likely issues or integration strategies. HR
professionals understand the value they bring to the deal. Therefore, HR executives need to be
able to speak the same language as the deal-makers, and demonstrate a clear understanding of
the M&A process and the logic behind different types of deals. HR needs to be able to develop a
people strategy that supports the deal structure.
Cultural integration is often the key to making the deal work. It is apparent that failed cultural
integrations are often at the heart of merger difficulties. A 2004 Mercer transatlantic study of
executives involved in M&A deals found that 75 percent of the executives cited “harmonising
culture and communicating with employees” as the most important factors for successful post-
merger integration. There is a need for the HR to take care of the national differences and
regional information while designing the HR policies and facilitating the integration of the
cultures between two companies in M&A deals.
Following are the cross-border HRM issues which may arise in M&A:
1. Employee recruitment is a major issue in the cross-border deal. It include issues like rapid
wage increase, staff turnover rate is high, poaching of the staff due to shortage I labour
markets for the skilled workers and talented staff.
2. Reward system as there may be wage disparity between skilled and unskilled labour.
Complex reward packages because if the social benefits, difficulty in introducing the pay
differentials for the workers of similar status.
3. Difficulty in employee retention because of the shortage of the well-trained local staff
which is now overcome by the control on the compensation and motivational techniques.
4. Management employee relations as the right to join trade unions, trade unions not
adversarial and help to facilitate the operations by arranging courses and cultural activities.
M&A’s are the intensive activities that require the involvement of HR since the beginning. The
key areas for the HR involvement are effective communication, cultural alignment, and change
management plan, developing the staff model and developing the reward strategy for the new
organisation. If not handled well, M&A can lead to the failures and wastage of the valuable
resources. Issues which need to be addressed pertaining to the inadequate human capital
assessment, identifying the key members of the management and bestowing the special attention
to them. It is important to clearly communicate with all the employees about the merger and its
implications on them due to the change in the management.
Issues like defining the specifications for the key roles and responsibilities, designing the adequate
compensation and benefit strategies and managing the conflicts among managers also needs to
be addressed. Managing the people in the international context is one of the biggest challenges
which the companies and HR has to bear during the cross-border deals. Retention of the leadership
and key talent, organisational restructuring, alignment of the compensation and benefit plans
to ensure a cultural fit needs to be addressed in the first go without bearing a second thought in
the mind by HR and corporates.
So, HR can add value to the M&A cycle in following ways:
5. Due diligence.
12.5.4 Implementation
3. Ensuring incentive programs are designed to reward executives and key employees for
achieving the goals of the merger.
Align culture with the vision and business strategy of the combined organisation.
Identify the desired culture and gain agreement from senior management and opinion
leaders of both organisations.
Conduct common understanding programmes with the executive level employees of the
company which is taken-over.
Negotiate and make the Union Leaders understand about the entire issue and their future
positions after M&A.
Understand the Organisational Structure/Salary Structure and try to reduce the parity
between the two companies.
Notes Understand all the legal cases pending with the acquiring company and take full
accreditation of the cases to take next steps.
Self Assessment
16. HR should encourage the new company’s leaders to provide strict punishment to the ones
that do not support the new culture.
Case Study Asian Paints: Acquisition
I
n the case of Asian Paints, with 51% acquisition of Singapore Company Berger
International in 2002, Vice Chairman and MD Dani says he was clear that his company
will be choosy in its operations and not necessarily operate all the ten subsidiaries of
Berger. In the four years since the acquisition, Asian Paints has sold three subsidiaries (in
Malta, Philippines and Myanmar), Dani’s motive is clear: to be present only in emerging
markets and in markets that generate cash flows. “Surely, cultural issues play an important
role in an acquisition. To handle this carefully, we spent time with the employees and
worked as a team to thrash out the synergies such that the acquisition generates value”,
says Dani.
Critical size helps you spread your fixed cost. At the same time, one must always be
prepared for making course corrections on the way. We exited out of our ventures in
Martius and Malta because after operating for while, we found out that the growth of the
paint market as well as the economy was stagnating. So, we took our call and I feel
companies should always be prepared to make such decisions: but what counts in today’s
age is the speed of integration, opines Dani.
One of the most essential learning from the acquisitions was realising the importance of
local knowledge. When the companies went abroad they realised that it was a whole new
ball game; the market dynamics were all together different. They have to align their
products and customer offerings to cater to each individual market. Along with local
understanding, comes the core issue of localisation of talent and the need to develop a
strong local cadre. A local workforce brings with it a better understanding of the market,
operating environment and consumer preferences. The greatest challenge for Indian MNCs
lies in the area of attracting and acquiring local talent for their overseas ventures. As
Indian companies globalise, they have to acquire size and market share to stay afloat.
The process of integration follows an acquisition, but what counts in today’s age is the
speed of integration and how fast you are able to share organisational best practices
within different units. Along with technology and intellectual integration, emotional
integration is also critical, because in the end, one need to realise that while there are
brands, there are also customers and there are employees.
Take for example Asian Paints. For its international operations, Asian Paints accomplished
the process of clearing apprehensions about acquisitions through its various connect
Contd...
initiatives, where communication played a key role, followed by effective action. It is Notes
now implementing systems and processes to make these operating as efficient as any
world class entity. Asian Paints has implemented ERP across its units to make the
transaction process more robust. It has flown in people on special assignments, wherever
any unit had any concern area, be it pertaining to supply chain, marketing or any other
function. It has recently rolled out a mega operational efficiency initiative which focuses
on issues like productivity, safety, environment, reducing factory level losses, planning
and control systems, thus adding value to its acquired operations.
Questions
1. How did Asian Paints handle cultural issues in the acquired companies? What are its
essential learnings from the acquisitions?
2. What steps did Asian Paints take in the process of integration following the
acquisitions?
3. How did Asian Paints accomplish the process of clearing apprehensions about its
acquisitions?
12.6 Summary
Mergers and acquisitions are the market strategies adopted by the companies to enter the
foreign markets.
Acquisitions also give size and a readymade platform to scale up the operations for the
firms.
Tata is the best example among the Indian companies to perform a large number of cross-
border deals and establish a global footing.
In the cross border deals, HR plays a major role in making the success of such deals.
M&A’s are the intensive activities that require the involvement of HR since the beginning.
The key areas for the HR involvement are effective communication, cultural alignment,
and change management plan, developing the staff model and developing the reward
strategy for the new organisation.
12.7 Keywords
Co-generic: It is the merger taking place in the same industry and at the same economic level.
Concentric Mergers: It is a where two merging firms are in the same general industry, but they
have no mutual buyer/customer or supplier relationship.
Conglomerate: It is the merger between the unrelated business or two companies that have no
common business areas.
Consolidation Mergers: With this merger, a brand new company is formed and both companies
are bought and combined under the new entity. The tax terms are the same as those of a purchase
merger.
Notes Joint Venture: It is a strategic alliance in which two or more firms create a legally independent
company to share some of their resources and capabilities to develop a competitive advantage.
Strategic Alliance: It is a formal relationship between two or more parties to pursue a set of
agreed upon goals or to meet a critical business need while remaining independent organisations.
1. “Hope is not a strategy. People must have specific skills, knowledge, abilities, and
experience in order to succeed in cross-border deals.” Do you agree? Justify giving example.
2. Analyse the factors that led to the failure of M&A deals internationally.
3. You are a corporate manager at Tata Group. Critically examine the factors you must have
taken in venturing abroad to acquire Corus.
4. What may be the critical issues that may crop up when a firm plans for M&A deals abroad?
5. “JV can be used as an entry strategy into a particular market or for purposes of risk
mitigation.” Justify.
6. Examine the factors that force the companies nowadays to venture abroad.
7. “There are risks involved in M&A’s internationally.” Analyse those risks giving examples.
8. “M&A’s are the successful if they are a perfect blend of culture.” Do you agree? Justify.
10. Critically analyse the factors that Indian corporates must treat with utmost care while
making the outbound deals.
1. Assets 2. Acquisition
3. Buyout 4. Takeover
5. Private 6. False
7. False 8. True
http://www.slideshare.net/denisonconsulting/cross-border-ma-solution
www.coolavenues.com
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
13.4 Summary
13.5 Keywords
Objectives
Introduction
When business conducted across national and cultural borders, the operationalisation of an
enterprise’s ethics programme takes on added layers of complexity. Especially, when
multinationals operate in host countries that have different standards of business practice and
are economically impoverished, whose legal infrastructure is inadequate, whose governments
are corrupt and where human rights are habitually violated.
The question of ethical relativity arises where human rights are habitually violated. The question
of ethical relativity arises not only in the context of different home- and host-country employment
practices but also in the central operations and policies of multinationals. So, now we will Notes
understand the developments of international business ethics and the challenges they raise for
HR professionals.
To exist in international environment, the HRM strategies need to be redefined, some of them
are discussed in the unit.
The human resource functions in a global arena follows some trends and challenges as discussed
below:
Most industries and countries are to experience a widening talent gap, notably for highly
skilled positions and for next generation of mid and senior leaders.
Working virtually: Working virtually across functions and geographies will intensify,
with implications for intercultural communication, business ethics and organisational
effectiveness.
Localising management of overseas operations is the key, but a global outlook is just as
important as local knowledge. Businesses need to find new ways to connect people to each
other and to information, both internally and externally. The expectation of having an
“always-available” employee varies around the world.
Tentative global employee engagement: Companies that have implemented multiple layoffs
have eroded a sense of security in the global work force. There is a disconnection between
what companies currently have to offer employees and what employees really value.
Retaining valued talent is more important, but the drivers to retain that talent are different
depending on the type of market (growth opportunity is paramount in growth markets;
new or challenging responsibilities is paramount in mature markets).
The gap in creative leadership, executing for speed, and managing ‘collective intelligence’
must be addressed. Employee engagement has suffered; companies are now trying to
restore pride and trust.
The economic crisis and fewer existing business opportunities: The crisis and fewer
opportunities create a high demand on the global HR function to demonstrate greater
adaptability.
Human Resource (HR) will be an important link between corporate headquarters and
overseas operations. HR is conducting too many initiatives, with mediocre outcomes.
Companies need to reform their HR function and boost resources devoted to HR.
Economic uncertainties: They fundamentally change motivators that attract and retain
employees. There is an unbridged disparity between what companies have to offer
employees and what employees really value.
Notes Human capital protectionism: It may continue to increase in many countries in non-tariff,
nationalistic forms.
Increased demand for HR metrics: It may bring about a widely accepted set of analytic
measures and methods (global standards) to describe predict and evaluate the quality and
impact of HR practices and the productivity of the work force. However, globalisation is
also driving impetus toward the use of more metrics with greater cultural sensitivity.
First, Wallack says, as an HR professional, you must make sure your organisation
understands what globalisation means to you, your company and your business sector —
you must be the one to advocate full understanding of what the drivers are. It’s important
too, to keep in mind that globalisation means different things to different people across
the world. Ernst & Young describes globalisation in The New Mindset as “the level of a
country’s integration with the world economy through the exchange of goods and services,
movement of capital and finance, movement of labour, exchange of technology and ideas,
and cultural integration.” Martin Wolf, in Why Globalisation Works, sums it up more
simply as, “economic integration across borders through markets.” And every person
you ask will probably define it a bit differently.
Did u know? A “global mindset” is often defined as a way of seeing the world and the
globalisation of markets, organisations and individuals. Developing a more global
mindset enables your organisation to be more effectively tackle functional, organisational,
and cross-cultural boundaries and move forward.
International ethics
Self Assessment
1. Finding and retaining quality talent is not very necessary to business sustainability.
4. Most industries and countries are to experience a widening talent gap mainly for highly
non-skilled labours.
5. In global scenario companies should reform their HR function and boost resources devoted
to HR.
When business conducted across national and cultural borders, the operationalisation of an
enterprise’s ethics programme takes on added layers of complexity. Especially, when
multinationals operate in host countries that have different standards of business practice and
are economically impoverished, whose legal infrastructure is inadequate, whose governments
are corrupt and where human rights are habitually violated.
The question of ethical relativity arises where human rights are habitually violated. The question
of ethical relativity arises not only in the context of different home- and host-country employment
practices but also in the central operations and policies of multinationals. So, now we will
understand the developments of international business ethics and the challenges they raise for
HR professionals.
If a multinational has assigned a PCN to manage its operations in a host country where bribery
is common, child labour is used and workplace safety is wanting, then it is difficult to determine
whose standards should prevail i.e. those of the multinational’s parent country or the host
country?
!
Caution There are three main responses to this:
1. Ethical relativism
2. Ethical absolutism
3. Ethical universalism.
Notes The ethical relativist believes that there are no universal or international rights and wrongs. It
all depends on a particular culture’s values and beliefs. Thus if the people of Indonesia tolerate
the bribery of their public officials, this is morally no better or worse than the people of Singapore
or Denmark who refuse to accept bribery. For the ethical relativist, when in Rome, one should
do as the Romans do. While ethical relativism may be appealing to those who fear cultural
imperialism, it is a logical and ethically incoherent theory.
The ethical absolutist (or imperialist) believes one should continue doing what they will do in
their home country. When in Rome, one should do what one would do at home, regardless of
what the Romans do. This view of ethics gives primacy to one’s own cultural values. But the
opponents believe that ethical absolutists are intolerant individuals who confuse respect for
local traditions with ethical relativism.
Some people’s behaviours are wrong wherever they are practiced (e.g. bribery of government
officials), other behaviours may be tolerated in their cultural context (e.g. the practice of routine
gift giving between Japanese business people). When PCNs discover too late that the political-
legal environment in which their home-country policies were formulated is significantly different
from that of the host countries in which they operate, the results can be extreme.
Example: US expatriate bank manager in Italy who was applied by the local branch’s
recommendation to grossly under-report the bank’s profits for income tax purposes and insisted
the bank’s earnings be reported in the same way as they would in the USA accurately. Later at
the bank’s tax hearing, he was told by the Italian Taxation Department that the bank owed three
times as much tax as it had paid. This reflected the Italian Taxation Department’s standard
assumption that all firms under-report their earnings by two-thirds. The new assessment stood
despite the expatriate’s protests.
The ethical universalist believes there are fundamental principles of right and wrong which
transcend cultural boundaries and that multinationals must adhere to these fundamental
principles or global values. They can distinguish between practices that are culturally different
and those that are morally wrong.
It has been identified that honesty, compassion, responsibility, freedom, respect for life and
nature, fairness, tolerance and unity (family or community) are core global values to which
people subscribe irrespective of race, culture, gender or religion. The challenge for business lies
in incorporating them as core business values and aligning the staff to these values.
Example: The value of respect might include valuing differences (gender, sexual
orientation, race, religion, etc.), sexual harassment prevention and understanding stereotypes
as well as workplace safety, product safety and environment protection. The challenge for
managers operating in diverse cultural environments is that different cultures will prioritise
core ethical values differently and will translate values into specific behaviours differently. This
is the main reason why cultures clash and is the essence of a true ethical dilemma. Like in USA,
freedom is regarded as the most important global value whereas in Asia, family or community
unity includes fairness, honesty and responsibility along with freedom and unity as top ethical
values.
which individuals firms could write their own codes and measure the behaviour of their Notes
executives. The Caux Principles are grounded in two basic ethical ideals: kyosei and
human dignity. The Caux Principles aim to operationalising the twin values of living and
working together and human dignity by promoting free trade, environmental and cultural
integrity and the prevention of bribery and corruption.
HR has a special role to play in the formulation, communication, monitoring and enforcement
of an enterprise’s ethics programme. The HR function along with finance and law is the
appropriate locus of responsibility for an enterprise’s ethics programme. HR is well positioned
to make an important contribution to creating, implementing and sustaining ethical
organisational behaviour within a strategic HR paradigm. HR professionals have specialised
expertise in the areas of organisational culture, communication, training, performance
management, leadership, motivation, group dynamics, organisational structured and change
management–all of which are key factors for integrating responsibility for ethics into all aspects
of organisational life.
People involved in international business activities face many of the same ethical issues as those
in domestic business but the issues are made more complex because of the different social,
economic, political and legal environments in which multinationals operate. So, multinationals
will need to develop self-regulatory practices via codes of ethics and behavioural guidelines for
expatriate, TCN and local HCN staff. Firms which opt consciously or by default to leave ethical
considerations up to the individual not only contribute to the pressures of operating in a foreign
environment but also allow internal inconsistencies that affect total global performance.
1. When selecting expatriates, their ability to manage with integrity could be a job-relevant
criterion.
2. The pre-departure training of expatriates and their orientation programme should include
an ethics component.
3. This might include formal studies in ethical theory and decision-making as well as
interactive discussion and role playing around dilemmas that expatriates are likely to
encounter.
4. In an effort to sensitise managers to cultural diversity and to accept the point that home
practices are not necessarily the best or only practices, there has been an emphasis in
international business training on adapting to the way in which other cultures do business.
6. It is also important for the HR department to monitor the social (ethical) performance of
its expatriate managers to ensure that as managers become familiar with the customs and
practices of competition in the host country, they do not backslide into the rationalisation
that “everybody else does it”.
7. To avoid temptation to cut ‘ethical corners’, expatriates must not be placed under
unreasonable pressure to deliver good financial results and they must be given feedback
and reinforcement.
Notes 8. Performance appraisals, compensation programmes and regular trips home are important
instruments in developing and maintaining ethical cultures.
9. The HR department must also offer ongoing support to expatriates throughout their
assignment. This is made relatively that an expatriate faced with a dilemma might have
ready access to mentors at home or expatriates in other countries via these technologies.
10. Those involved in the management of HR would do well to consider these issues when
developing organisational strategies and selecting, training and developing expatriates.
Procter & Gamble (P&G) was founded in 1837 by two brothers-in-law, William Procter –
a British candle maker and James Gamble – an Irish soap maker. Today, the firm touches
virtually every household in the industrialised world. Its global presence is demonstrated
by 60 overseas plants sales operations in 140 countries.
P&G has a long track record of zealous attention to product quality, long-term perspectives,
and social responsibility. The latter includes a corporate commitment to the diversity of
its world force. It adheres to the philosophy that workforce diversity is not just a matter of
social responsibility – it is simply good business. P&G promotes from within, so it places
a premium on recruiting the best of the available job applicants.
In May 1988, P&G formed a Corporate Diversity Strategy Task Force to clarify the meaning
of diversity, to articulate its importance to the survival of the firm, and to develop long-
term strategies for the successful management of a diverse workforce in a diverse
competitive environment. American consumers seem to approve of this and other P&G
programmes, as documented by the 1995 Fortune Corporate Reputations survey which
found P&G to be the seventh-most admired corporation in American.
International managers must expect managers from other cultures to apply different criteria in
making ethical decisions and that such choices are heavily influenced by each one’s culture.
Example: In 1985, when Reader’s Digest (US) decided to close its loss-making Japanese
subsidiary, it encountered savage opposition from the Japanese union and part of the press.
They portrayed the parent company as being guilty of neglect and abandonment in the face of
unswerving loyalty. The union placed ads in the New York Times saying that the company had
dumped its Japanese readers and its own employees and that the company’s behaviour was
unfair, unscrupulous and irresponsible. The interests of shareholders and workforce did not
correspond. Whereas the Japanese recognised the interest of workforce, the Americans prioritised
the shareholders’ interests. Each side appears to have behaved in accordance with its own ethical
norms. Because cultures differ, behaviour considered appropriate in one culture may be
interpreted differently in some other.
Bribery and corruption are the most frequent ethical problems encountered by international
managers. The World Bank estimates that about US $80 billion annually goes to corrupt
government officials.
Bribery involves the payment of agents to do things that are inconsistent with the purpose of Notes
their position or office in order to gain an unfair advantage. It can be distinguished from so-
called gifts and ‘facilitating’ or ‘grease’ payments. The latter are payments to motivate agents to
complete a task they would routinely do in the normal course of their duties. Bribery undermines
equity, efficiency and integrity in the public service, undercuts public confidence in markets and
aid programmes, adds to the cost of products and may affect the safety and economic well-being
of the general public.
1. Internationally, the movement to criminalise the practice of bribery was started when in
1977, the USA enacted the Foreign Corrupt Practices Act (FCPA) to prohibit US-based
firms and US nationals from making bribery payments to foreign government officials.
Payments to agents violate the Act if it is known that the agent will use those payments to
bribe a government official. The Act was amended in 1988 to permit ‘facilitating’ payments
but mandates record-keeping provisions to help ensure that those payments are not
disguised as entertainment or business expenses.
2. In December 1996, the UN adopted the United Nations Declaration against Corruption
and Bribery in International Commercial Transactions, which committed UN members to
criminalise bribery and deny tax deductibility for bribes. A year later, the Declaration was
endorsed by 30 member nations and four non-member nations of the OECD adopting the
Convention on Combating Bribery of Foreign Public Officials in International Business
Transactions (OECD) Convention.
4. Equity
Applications of core human values to specific duties of multinationals include the adoption of
adequate workplace and environmental health and safety standards, the payment of basic living
wages, equal employment opportunity, refraining from the use of child labour, providing basic
employee training and education, and allowing workers to organise and form unions.
The regulation of foreign investment is another area that has some implications for ethics and
social responsibility. Many nations and their governments have disapproved the ethics of MNCs
gaining an economic foothold and then taking the resources and profits back home. These
concerns have led to regulation.
In order to be accepted as a good corporate citizen in the local community, a subsidiary must be
prepared to abide by both the word and spirit of local laws. This is because the media is
particularly harsh with them.
Notes
Example: When the percentage of pesticides/chemicals in Coke and Pepsi was found to
be higher in India than in the US, there was nationwide coverage, although it was less than the
amount found in local drinks.
The laws and social norms governing these factors may vary in different countries and compliance
with them with better standards than local firms is necessary for a good image. The foreign
subsidiaries should take particular care of:
6. Management-union relationship.
Ethical issues including human rights and environment protection are at the centre stage in
today’s world. This knowledge can be obtained from a study of the national legal system,
religious practices and codes, study of organisations and their cultures, interviewing expatriates
who have served in that country and gaining knowledge.
Ethical consumerism is the intentional purchase of products and services that the customer
considers to be made ethically with a minimal harm to or exploitation of humans, animals and/
or the natural environment. Ethical consumerism is practiced through ‘positive buying’ in that
ethical products are favoured, or “moral boycott”, that is negative purchasing and company-
based purchasing.
Ethics and the question of corporate social responsibility are complex and the source of much
controversy.
The growing interest in CSR issues has motivated entities – such as the United Nations, The
Organisation for Economic Cooperation and Development (OECD) and assessment Organisations
in Europe and North America – to establish and enhance standards that will serve as a benchmark
for multinational corporate behaviour, and to strengthen mechanisms evaluating that behaviour.
In Japan, too, there is a growing realisation of the need for CSR. This is partly due to a series of
corporate scandals that have prompted Japanese industry and the government to introduce a
range of counter-measures.
Caselet Case of Colgate Palmolive
A
published case is that of the American company Colgate Palmolive. Many such
American companies have developed social responsibility programmes in South
Africa under the guidelines of the Sullivan Code. Its contributions have been to
found various educational projects at schools and university and community projects. The
list includes a number of health and dental projects. The management and allocation of
funding to projects was a responsibility of the company-appointed management rather
than being carried out by representatives of the various stakeholder communities stand to
benefit from these projects. The code requires that the company directs 12% of its salary
budget to such projects. The company had been criticised by the trade union for not
involving them, and at times for funding projects, for example in the area of dental care,
out of enlightened self-interest rather than altruism or a sense of what is required to
contribute to the development of people within the community.
Source: Jackson, Terence (2002). International HRM: A Cross-Cultural Approach. Sage Publications Ltd.
London.
Task
Critically examine the social responsibility undertaken by a big corporate – Tata Steel.
2. Ensure training programmes cover areas of ethical concern – such as bribery, human
rights, justice, and the common good – in a manner consistent with the multinational’s
objectives in this regard.
3. Align performance appraisal and compensation systems so that they support the ethical
stance taken.
4. Be conversant with the type of requests that may be made of staff operating internationally
– not just expatriates but also those who visit foreign markets in various capacities – and
Notes provide the necessary training so that they have the requisite negotiating skills to handle
problem situations that may arise.
5. Ensure that employees understand the difference between corrupt bribery payments,
gifts, and allowable facilitation payments. Given the strong positions taken by governments
on ethical behaviour, it is important that all staff is fully briefed on their responsibilities
in this regard.
Self Assessment
6. Cross cultural differences does not matter while international managers take decisions.
8. Ethics is not very important aspect for the business operating internationally.
9. Ethical relativists believe that the fundamental principles of right and wrong transcend
the cultural boundaries.
10. The pre-departure training of the expatriates should include training on the ethical aspects
of the subsidiary operating abroad.
11. FDI regulation also accounts for the implications of the ethics and social responsibility.
12. HR functions are responsible for many of the activities that build a sense of corporate
identity.
Human resource is the most significant part of an organisation. With organisations going global,
the functions and responsibilities of HRM have also enhanced. Below are described the strategies
for IHRM with the steps towards them.
The scarcity of qualified managers has become a major constraint on the speed with which
multinational companies can expand their international sales. The growth of the knowledge-
based society, along with the pressures of opening up emerging markets, has led cutting-edge
global companies to recognise now more than ever that human resources and intellectual capital
are as significant as financial assets in building sustainable competitive advantage. To follow
their lead, chief executives in other multinational companies will have to bridge the gap between
their companies’ human resources rhetoric and reality. HR must now be given a prominent seat
in the boardroom.
Good HR management in a multinational company comes down to getting the right people in
the right jobs in the right places at the right times and at the right cost. These international
managers must then be meshed into a cohesive network in which they quickly identify and
leverage good ideas worldwide.
Such an integrated network depends on executive continuity. This in turn requires career
management to insure that internal qualified executives are readily available when vacancies
occur around the world and that good managers do not jump ship because they have not been
recognised.
Very few companies come close to achieving this. Most multinational companies do not have Notes
the leadership capital they need to perform effectively in all their markets around the world.
One reason is the lack of managerial mobility. Neither companies nor individuals have come to
terms with the role that managerial mobility now has to play in marrying business strategy
with HR strategy and in insuring that careers are developed for both profitability and
employability.
HR directors rarely have extensive overseas experience and their managers often lack business
knowledge. Also, most HR directors do not have adequate information about the brightest
candidates coming through the ranks of the overseas subsidiaries. “HR managers also frequently
lack a true commitment to the value of the multinational company experience,” notes Brian
Brooks, group director of human resources for the global advertising company WPP Group Plc.
The consequent lack of world-wide multi-cultural managerial talent bites into companies’ bottom
lines through high staff turnover, high training costs, stagnant market shares, failed joint ventures
and mergers and the high opportunity costs that inevitably follow bad management selections
around the globe.
Companies new to the global scene quickly discover that finding savvy, trustworthy managers
for their overseas markets is one of their biggest challenges. This holds true for companies
across the technology spectrum, from software manufacturers to textile companies that have to
manage a global supply chain. The pressure is on these newly globalising companies to cut the
trial-and-error time in building a cadre of global managers in order to shorten the leads of their
larger, established competitors, but they are stymied as to how to do it.
The solution for multinationals is to find a way to emulate companies that have decades of
experience in recruiting, training and retaining good employees across the globe.
Example: Both Unilever and the International Business Machines Corporation, leverage
their worldwide HR function as a source of competitive advantage.
Anglo-Dutch Unilever has long set a high priority on human resources. HR has a seat on the
board’s executive committee and an organisation that focuses on developing in-house talent
and hot-housing future leaders in all markets. The result is that 95 percent of Unilever’s top 300
managers are fully homegrown. Internationalisation is bred into its managers through job
content as well as overseas assignments. Since 1989, Unilever has redefined 75 percent of its
managerial posts as “international” and doubled its number of managers assigned abroad, its
expatriates, or “expats.”
The strategy demands global HR leadership with standard systems but local adaptation. The
key underlying ideas are to satisfy your company’s global human resources needs via feeder
mechanisms at regional, national and local levels, and to leverage your current assets to the
fullest extent by actively engaging people in developing their own careers.
Example: IBM, with 80 years’ experience in overseas markets, reversed its HR policy in
1995 to deal with the new global gestalt and a new business strategy. Instead of cutting jobs
abroad to reduce costs, IBM. is now focusing on its customers’ needs and increasing overseas
assignments. “We are a growing service business — our people are what our customers are
buying from us,” explained Eileen Major, director of international mobility at IBM.
Notes When managers sign on with these companies, they know from the start that overseas assignments
are part of the deal if they wish to climb high on the corporate ladder. These multinational
companies manage their HR talent through international databases that, within hours, can
provide a choice of Grade-A in-house candidates for any assignment. Even allowing for company
size, few United States-based multinationals come close to matching the bench strength of a
Unilever or Nestlé. The Japanese multinationals are even farther behind.
By adopting the strategies mentioned below, a company should be able to put into place an
effective global human resources program within three to four years.
1. Break all the “local national” glass ceilings: The first, and perhaps most fundamental, step
toward building a global HR program is to end all favouritism toward managers who are
nationals of the country in which the company is based. Companies tend to consider
nationals of their headquarters country as potential expatriates and to regard everyone
else as “local nationals.” But in today’s global markets, such “us-versus-them” distinctions
can put companies at a clear disadvantage, and there are strong reasons to discard them:
Big distinctions can be found between expatriate and local national pay, benefits
and bonuses, and these differences send loud signals to the brightest local nationals
to learn as much as they can and move on.
Less effort is put into recruiting top-notch young people in overseas markets than in
the headquarters country. This leaves fast-growing developing markets with shallow
bench strength.
Insufficient attention and budget are devoted to assessing, training and developing
the careers of valuable local nationals already on the company payroll.
Conventional wisdom has defined a lot of the pros and cons of using expatriates versus
local nationals. But in an increasingly global environment, cultural sensitivity and
cumulative skills are what count. And these come with an individual, not a nationality.
Notes All employees are local nationals of at least one country, but often they can claim a
connection with several. More frequent international travel, population mobility and
cross-border university education are increasing the pool of available hybrid local nationals.
Every country-connection a person has is a potential advantage for the individual and the
company. So it is in a multinational company’s interests to expand the definition of the
term “local national” rather than restrict it.
2. Trace your lifeline: Based on your company’s business strategy, identify the activities that
are essential to achieving success around the world and specify the positions that hold
responsibility for performing them. These positions represent the “lifeline” of your
company. Typically, they account for about ten percent of management.
Then define the technical, functional and soft skills needed for success in each “lifeline” Notes
role. As Ms. Major of IBM notes, “It is important to understand what people need to
develop as executives. They can be savvy functionally and internationally, but they also
have to be savvy inside the organisation.”
This second step requires integrated teams of business and HR specialists working with
line managers. Over time, they should extend the skills descriptions to cover all of the
company’s executive posts.
Example: It took 18 months for IBM to roll out its worldwide skills management process
to more than 100,000 people in manufacturing and development.
A good starting point is with posts carrying the same title around the globe, but local
circumstances need to be taken into account. Chief financial officers in subsidiaries in
different regions of the world, for example, should know how to deal with volatile exchange
rates and high inflation. Unilever circulates skills profiles for most of its posts, but expects
managers to adapt them to meet local needs.
Compiling these descriptions is a major undertaking, and they will not be perfect because
job descriptions are subject to continuous change in today’s markets and because perfect
matches of candidates with job descriptions are unlikely to be found. But they are an
essential building block to a global HR policy because they establish common standards.
The lifeline and role descriptions should be revisited at least annually to ensure they
express the business strategy. Many companies recognise the need to review the impact of
strategy and marketplace changes on high-technology and R&D roles but overlook the
fact that managerial jobs are also redrawn by market pressures. The roles involved in
running an emerging market operation, for example, expand as the company builds its
investment and sales base.
Did u know? At IBM, skills teams update their role descriptions every six months to keep
pace with the markets and to inform senior managers which skills are “hot” and which the
company has in good supply.
3. Build a global database to know who and where the talent is: The main tool of a global
HR policy has to be a global database simply because multinational companies now have
many more strategic posts scattered around the globe and must monitor the career
development of many more managers. Although some multinational companies have
been compiling worldwide HR databases over the past decade, these still tend to concentrate
on posts at the top of the organisation, neglecting the middle managers in the country
markets and potential stars coming through the ranks.
Example: IBM has compiled a database of senior managers for 20 years, into which it
feeds names of promising middle managers, tracking them all with annual reviews. But it made
the base worldwide only 10 years ago. Now the company is building another global database
that will cover 40,000 competencies and include all employees worldwide who can deliver those
skills or be groomed to do so. IBM plans to link the two databases by 2000.
Unilever has practiced a broader sweep for the past 40 years. It has five talent “pools” stretching
from individual companies (e.g., Good Humor Breyers Ice Cream in the United States and Walls
Ice Cream in Britain) to foreign subsidiaries (e.g., Unilever United States Inc. and Unilever U.K.
Holdings Ltd.) to global corporate headquarters. From day one, new executive trainees are
given targets for personal development. Those who show the potential to move up significantly
Notes are quickly earmarked for the “Development” list, where their progress through the pools —
company, national, business group and/or region, global, executive committee — is guided not
only by their direct bosses but by managers up to three levels above. “We want bigger yardsticks
to be applied to these people and we don’t want their direct bosses to hang on to them,” explains
Herwig Kressler, Unilever’s head of remuneration and industrial relations. To make sure the
company is growing the general management talent it will need, the global HR director’s
strategic arm reaches into the career moves of the third pool — those serving in a group or
region — to engineer appointments across divisions and regions.
To build this type of global HR database, you should begin with the Step 2 role descriptions
and a series of personal-profile templates that ask questions that go beyond each manager’s
curriculum vitae to determine cultural ties, language skills, countries visited, hobbies and
interests. For overseas assignments, HR directors correctly consider such soft skills and
cultural adaptability to be as important as functional skills. The fact that overseas
appointments are often made based largely on functional skills is one reason so many of
them fail.
Some multinational companies, for example, have been developing a new type of manager
whom we term “glopats”: executives who are used as business-builders and troubleshooters
in short or medium-length assignments in different markets. Other multinational
companies are exploring the geographical elasticity of their local nationals.
To encourage managerial mobility, each personal profile in your database should have a
field where managers and functional experts assess where and for what purposes they
would move. When jobs or projects open, the company can quickly determine who is able
and willing to take them.
Managers can move up and down a mobility pyramid at various stages of their career,
often depending on their family and other commitments. Young single people or divorced
managers, for instance, may be able and eager to sign up for the glopat role but want to
drop to a lower level of the pyramid if they wish to start or restart a family life. Or
seasoned senior managers may feel ready to rise above the regional level only when their
children enter college.
Example: IBM uses its global HR database increasingly for international projects. In
preparing a proposal for a German car manufacturer, for instance, it pulled together a team of
experts with automotive experience in the client’s major and new markets. To reduce costs for its
overseas assignments, IBM has introduced geographic “filters”: a line manager signals the need
for outside skills to one of IBM’s 400 resource coordinators, who aims to respond in 72 hours; the
coordinator then searches the global skills database for a match, filtering the request through a
series of ever-widening geographic circles. Preference is often given to the suitable candidate
who is geographically closest to the assignment. The line manager then negotiates with that
employee’s boss or team for the employee’s availability.
The shape of a company’s mobility pyramid will depend on its businesses, markets and
development stage and will evolve as the company grows. A mature multinational food-
processing company with decentralised operations, for example, might find a fiat pyramid
5. Identify your leadership capital: Build a database of your company’s mix of managerial
skills by persuading people to describe the information in their C.V., their management
talents and their potential on standard personal-profile templates. Jump-start the process
by having your senior managers and those in the lifeline posts complete the forms first.
Add others worldwide with the potential to move up. Include functional specialists who
show general management potential.
Require over time that every executive join the global HR system. This makes it harder for
uncut diamonds to be hidden by their local bosses. Recognising that people’s situations
and career preferences shift over time, hold all managers and technical experts responsible
for updating their C.V. and reviewing their personal profiles at least once a year.
Companies should make it clear that individual inputs to the system are voluntary but
that HR and line managers nevertheless will be using the data to plan promotions and
international assignments and to assess training needs.
6. Assess your bench strength and skills gap: Ask each executive to compare his or her skills
and characteristics with the ideal requirements defined for the executive’s current post
and preferred next post. Invite each to propose ways to close any personal skills gaps —
for example, through in-house training, mentoring, outside courses or participation in
cross-border task forces.
Compare the skills detailed in the personal assessments with those required by your
business strategy. This information should form the basis for your management
development and training programs and show whether you have time to prepare internal
candidates for new job descriptions.
Did u know? Unilever uses a nine-point competency framework for its senior managers. It
then holds the information in private databases that serve as feeder information for its
five talent pools. The company thoroughly reviews the five pools every two years and
skims them in between, always using a three- to five-year perspective. In 1990, for example,
its ice cream division had a strategic plan to move into 30 new countries within seven
years. Unilever began hiring in its current markets with that in mind and set up a mobile
“ice cream academy” to communicate the necessary technical skills.
7. Recruit regularly: Search for new recruits in every important local market as regularly as
you do in the headquarters country. Develop a reputation as “the company to join” among
graduates of the best universities, as Citibank has in India, for instance.
The best way to attract stellar local national recruits is to demonstrate how far up the
organisation they can climb. Although many Fortune 500 companies in the United States
derive 50 percent or more of their revenues from non-domestic sales, only 15 percent of
their senior posts are held by non-Americans.
There may be nothing to stop a local national from reaching the top, but the executive
suite inevitably reflects where a company was recruiting 30 years earlier. Even today,
many multinational companies recruit disproportionately more people in their largest —
often their longest-established — markets, thereby perpetuating the status quo.
Notes
Example: Philips Electronics N.V. gives each country subsidiary a target number of
people to bring through the ranks for international experience. Some go on to lengthy
international careers; others return to home base, where they then command more respect, both
in the business and with government officials, as a result of their international assignments.
8. Advertise your posts internally: Run your own global labour market. In a large company,
it is hard to keep track of the best candidates. For this reason, companies now advertise
many of its posts on its worldwide Intranet.
Shows ambitious people they can make their future in the company.
Gives the rest of the company first pick of talent made redundant in another part of
the world.
There are also certain disadvantages to this practice: Line managers have to fill the shoes
of those who move; a central arbiter may need to settle disputes between departments and
divisions, and applicants not chosen might decide to leave. To prevent that, disappointed
applicants should automatically be routed through the career development office to discuss
how their skills and performance mesh with their ambitions.
Did u know? IBM used to hire only from the inside, but five years ago it began to recruit
outsiders — including those from other industries — to broaden thinking and add
objectivity. Unilever is large enough that it can garner a short list of three to five internal
candidates for any post. Yet it still fills 15 per cent to 20 per cent of managerial jobs from
outside because of the need for specialist skills and because of the decreasing ability to
plan where future growth opportunities will occur.
The problem in large multinational companies is that many of today’s successors may
leave the company tomorrow. In addition, managers name only those people they know
as successors. The chief executives of many multinational companies keep their succession
plans — if they have any — only in their heads. This seems to overlook the harsh realities
of life and death. A better approach is that of one European shipping magnate who always
carries a written list with the name of a successor for the captain of every boat in his fleet.
10. Challenge and retain your talent: Global networks that transfer knowledge and good
practices run on people-to-people contact and continuity. Executive continuity also cuts
down on turnover, recruitment and opportunity costs. As international competition for Notes
talent intensifies, therefore, it becomes increasingly important for companies to retain
their good managers. Monetary incentives are not sufficient: the package must include
challenge, personal growth and job satisfaction.
A policy should be adopted that invites employees to grow with the company, in every
market. In addition, a career plan should be drawn up for every executive within his or her
first 100 days in the organisation. And plans should be reviewed regularly to be sure they
stay aligned with the business strategy and the individual’s need for job satisfaction and
employability.
Overseas assignments and cross-border task forces are excellent ways to challenge, develop and
retain good managers. They can also be awarded as horizontal “promotions.” This is particularly
useful since the fiat organisations currently in fashion do not have enough levels for hierarchical
promotions alone to provide sufficient motivation.
Unilever has long had a policy of retentive development and manages to hold on to 50 percent
of its high-flyers. As an integral part of its global HR policy, it develops the “good” as well as the
“best.” Unilever reasons realistically that it needs to back up its high-flyers at every stage and
location with a strong bench of crisis-proof, experienced supporters who also understand how
to move with the markets.
1. Be very open with people about the company’s assessment of their potential and
future.
2. Pay people well — and pay those with high potential really well, even though it
may look like a distortion to others.
3. Don’t hesitate too long to promote people who have shown ability.
Sometimes this policy involves taking risks with people. But the point of a good system is to
enable a company to place bets on the right people.
Above described IHRM strategies have the potential to affect every executive in every location.
Following business ethics is necessary at each step. This scale of culture change has to be led by
a company’s chief executive, with full commitment from the top management team. A task force
of HR and business strategists will be needed to facilitate and implement the program, but its
success in the end will depend on line managers.
Notes As Rex Adams, former worldwide director of human resources at Mobil Oil, has
commented, “The development of jobs and the people who fill them has to be the prime
responsibility of line managers, supported by HR as diagnosticians and strategists.”
Line managers will have to be won over to the business case for a multi-cultural mix, trained
seriously for their career-development roles and offered strong incentives to implement world-
class HR practices.
Notes Most multinational companies now do a good job of globalising the supply chains for all their
essential raw materials — except human resources. Players in global markets can no longer
afford this blind spot. Competition for talent is intensifying, and demand far outstrips supply.
To have the multi-cultural skills and vision they need to succeed, companies will have to put
into place programs that recruit, train and retain managers in all their markets.
Self Assessment
13. The scarcity of …………… managers has become a major constraint on the speed with
which multinational companies can expand their international sales.
14. Ethnocentric companies tend to be …………, they put the most confidence in nationals of
their headquarters country.
15. The lifeline and role descriptions should be revisited at least annually to ensure they
express the business …………..
Case Study Promoting Diversity: The American Express Way
I
n January 2006, the American Express Company (AmEx) was featured on Fortune’s 3
list of the ‘100 Best Companies to Work for’ in America. AmEx was ranked ninth
among large companies, and 37th in the overall ranking of the list of the best employers
in the US. AmEx had been one of the regulars on this list in the early 2000s, and the
company stood ninth in the overall ranking the previous year as well.
Fortune said AmEx’s diversity initiatives, especially its policies related to women
employees and minorities, made the company one of the best places to work for in the US.
AmEx’s commitment to minorities was also saluted by Black Enterprise, a magazine
committed to the business and consumer issues of the African – American community, in
July 2005.
The magazine included AmEx in its ’30 Best Companies for Diversity’ list. The 30 best
companies were selected after the editors of the magazine conducted a detailed survey of
more than 1,000 publicly traded American companies and 50 global companies with
significant operations in the US.
AmEx was also appreciated by other mainstream magazines as well as those catering to
minority groups and special interests such as Hispanic Business and Working Mother, for
its diversity related policies (Refer Exhibit I for a list of the awards AmEx received in 2006
and 2005).
In the 1990s, diversity issues came to the fore in corporate America. Not only had a large
number of women and minorities entered the workforce, but markets had also rapidly
Contd...
expanded beyond national boundaries, compelling companies to adapt their operations Notes
to diverse cultures and societies. In light of these developments, analysts suggested that
for companies to continue growing, they would have to take full advantage of all the
human resources and intellectual capital available to them.
Diversity was an integral part of the culture at AmEx. AmEx believed that focusing on
diversity was one of the ways to gain competitive advantage in the rapidly expanding
global markets.
Having a diverse workforce allowed AmEx to obtain a better understanding of the varied
markets it operated in. Diversity has been defined in various ways by experts. The narrow
definition, the one pertaining to the Equal Employment Opportunity Commission (EEOC)
in the US, defined diversity in terms of gender, race, ethnicity, nationality, age, religion,
and disability. However, over the years the concept of diversity widened to include
parameters like marital status, language, sexual orientation and tenure with the
organisation. AmEx embraced and promoted diversity in the broad sense, and its diversity
initiatives covered a large number of groups including women, minorities, senior
employees, people with disabilities, and homosexuals.
Despite AmEx’s commendable diversity initiatives and the testimony of several satisfied
employees, the company did not escape criticism. Over the years, AmEx had become
involved in a few controversies related to discrimination.
One of the biggest controversies that the company faced was a class action gender
discrimination lawsuit in 1999. During the late 1990s, several female advisors at AEFA
complained to the EEOC that the unit’s managers discriminated against them on the basis
of gender, and showed preferential treatment to white males in terms of assignments,
mentoring programs, promotions and compensation. They also said that they faced a
sexually hostile environment at AEFA. Although the complainants were from different
locations, their complaints were similar. Shirley Krieger from AEFA’s New York office
said that although she had worked at the unit for more than 13 years, her superiors had
been trying to get her to resign saying that she was ‘too old’.
Question
After analysing the study, can you suggest some measures to improve the HR measures?
Source: http://www.icmrindia.org/casestudies/catalogue/Human%20Resource%20and%20
Organization%20Behavior/HROB083.htm
13.4 Summary
When the business is conducted across national and cultural borders, the operationalisation
of the enterprises ethics programme adds complexity.
Challenge in the international business lies in incorporating the core business values and
aligning the staff to these values.
Challenges for the managers operating in diverse cultural environments is that different
cultures will prioritise core ethical values differently and will translate values into specific
behaviors differently.
Culture shock develops as a result of a person working within a different and unknown
cultural or social environment.
Bribery and corruption are the most frequent ethical problems encountered by international
managers.
Notes Ethics and corporate social responsibility are important factors but complex issues.
International managers must expect managers from other cultures to apply different criteria
in making ethical decisions and that such choices are heavily influenced by each one’s
culture.
The scarcity of qualified managers has become a major constraint on the speed with which
multinational companies can expand their international sales.
The consequent lack of world-wide multi-cultural managerial talent bites into companies’
bottom lines through high staff turnover, high training costs, stagnant market shares,
failed joint ventures and mergers and the high opportunity costs that inevitably follow
bad management selections around the globe.
Based on the company’s business strategy, activities should be identified that are essential
to achieving success around the world and specify the positions that hold responsibility
for performing them.
Overseas assignments and cross-border task forces are excellent ways to challenge, develop
and retain good managers.
13.5 Keywords
Corporate Ethics: It refers to the formulation of the internal policies pertaining to the ethical
conduct of employees.
CSR: It a built-in, self-regulating mechanism whereby business would monitor and ensure its
adherence to law, ethical standards, and international norms.
Culture: It is the organisation’s personality revealing the shared values, beliefs and habits of its
members.
Culture Shock: It is the anxiety and feelings of surprise, disorientation, uncertainty; confusion,
etc. felt when people have to operate within a different and unknown cultural or social
environment.
Ethical Absolutists: They believe in the primacy of one’s own culture values.
Ethical Consumerism: It is the intentional purchase of products and services that the customer
considers to be made ethically with a minimal harm to or exploitation of humans, animals
and/or the natural environment.
Ethical Relativists: They believe that there are no universal or international rights and wrongs.
Talent Management: Finding and retaining quality talent continues to be essential to business
sustainability.
1. Analyse the areas of developments of international business ethics and the challenges
they raise for HR professionals.
2. Being an HR manager, develop the strategies for the international HRM of an Indian
subsidiary operating abroad.
4. Why nowadays corporates are becoming socially responsible? Explain by giving example
of a big corporates.
6. When a firm operates abroad, what are the ways in which a firm can create an image of the
good and responsible corporate in the mind of the local community?
7. Develop the detailed HR plan which a manager should consider when sending his
employees abroad for work in the subsidiaries.
8. How do you think that the problem of bribery and corruption leads to ethical dilemmas?
Suggest the measures taken to deals with them.
9. Consider that your company has decided to send you abroad to manage its operations in
a host country where bribery and corruption is common. Analyse the global values which
you will follow.
10. Analyse the role and responsibilities of HR managers in achieving the corporate social
responsibility for subsidiary operating abroad.
11. Describe in detail the IHRM strategies and how can these be made to work.
1. False 2. True
3. False 4. False
5. True 6. False
7. True 8. False
15. Strategy
http://www.marketing.bwl.uni-muenchen.de/4_lehre/veranstaltungen_auto/
bachelor_wise/intl_marketing/pdfintmkt/lange_keydrivers2004.pdf
http://libguides.nl.sg/content.php?pid=116806&sid=1007638
http://www.strategy-business.com/article/9967?gko=db7b9
CONTENTS
Objectives
Introduction
14.4 Summary
14.5 Keywords
Objectives
Identify the difference between Indian HRM with those of UK, USA, Japan and China
Discuss about the drivers of contemporary Indian HRM trends
Introduction
Over many centuries India has absorbed managerial ideas and practices from around the world.
There has been considerable interest in the notion that managerial values are a function of the
behaviours of managers.
Global leadership is a complex process for the organisation. The success and failure of the global
leaders depends on the extent to which they adapt themselves to the cultural orientation of the
foreign countries. It is very important for the corporates to understand how leadership varies
across cultures, so that they can adapt themselves culturally.
Leadership values are learned from the culture in which the individual is reared and they direct
the person’s behaviour. They represent the deepest level of a culture.
Example: The US managers placed high value on tactful acquisition of influence and
regard for others. Japanese managers placed high value on difference to superiors, on company
commitment and on the cautious use of aggressiveness and control. Korean managers gave
importance to recognition of others. Indian managers placed high value on the non-assertive
pursuit of objectives. Australian managers placed importance on values reflecting low-keyed
approach to management and a high concern for others.
Leadership quality is highly dynamic concept which varies nationally due to perceived differences
in the values and beliefs of the people internationally. Employees in a highly power-distance
culture expect the managers to act as strong leaders as they are uncomfortable with the leaders
delegating discretionary decisions. While some cultures want their leaders to act as decisive and
directive experts; others want them to act as participative problem-solvers.
The leadership orientation of the managers varies across nations. These are due to the vast
differences in the values between the national groups. Some managers are pragmatic and judge
ideas in terms of whether they will work; others are highly ethical-moral and view ideas in
terms of right or wrong; still others have a feeling-orientation and judge ideas in terms of
whether they are pleasant; some have values that are related heavily to organisation life while
others include a wide range of personal values. So there are many value patterns which affect the
leadership qualities in the managers.
Leader plays an important role in the organisation. The extent to which they carry their status
into the wider context outside the workplace through their professional activity is significant.
Directive styles of leadership appear culturally inappropriate in northern Europe, North America,
Australia and New Zealand. An employee participation programme failed in Russia, perhaps
because of the national culture’s disbelief and distrust in participatory programmes. On the
other hand, the cultures of Sweden and Japan strongly support employee involvement in
organisational activities.
Example: In France and Italy, managers carry their status into activities outside the
workplace. But Danish and British managers are less able to apply their organisational status to
influence their non-workplace relationships. This means a British manager can easily play
under his subordinate in a club match than French or Italian managers. In Eastern and Middle-
Eastern societies managers are expected to behave as managers even outside their workplace.
At the other extreme say in Sweden, it is more important that the manager be able to tap sources
of expert power, perhaps elsewhere in the company, than give all the technical answers himself.
This means that Swede working for an Indonesian company is frustrated by what perceives as
inefficiency when an Indonesian co-worker refuses to ask an outsider for help. And when he
does make an advance, he is censured by co-workers for lack of loyalty and respect. While the
Swede uses the hierarchical structure to facilitate problem-solving the Indonesian values it as a
means of signalling who has authority over whom.
So when planning a project, the Swede first identifies places most value on social harmony and Notes
assesses the potential of the project on the basis of who will be involved in the different positions.
In the Indonesian context, a group which does not observe social priorities and protect group
interests, places individual interests in jeopardy, and the members cannot work together
efficiently.
The similar and the significant leadership values that are found in the successful managers
across the world are:
Japanese managers: Highly pragmatic, strong emphasis on size and growth; high value on
competence, achievement, dedication and loyalty to organisation.
Korean managers: Highly pragmatic and individualistic; strong achievement and competence
orientation.
Australian managers: High moral and humanistic orientation; low value on achievement and
success, competition and risk.
Indian managers: Highly individualistic, strong focus on transition compliance and competence.
Nevertheless, these similarities are too small compared to the vast inter-country differences.
That is why the ideal managerial value system in one country is often not so ideal in another
country. So, global managers must be flexible enough to change their approach and leadership
style while working in cultures or geographical locations other than their home countries.
In traditional Asian business, the superiors should be able to provide answers to technical
questions. This is because subordinates cannot easily challenge their superiors’ advice.
They tend to value it above suggestions given by peers, whatever its quality.
Self Assessment
1. The success and failure of the global leaders depends on the extent to which they adapt
themselves to the ……….. orientation of the foreign countries.
2. Leadership values are learned from the culture in which the individual is reared and they
direct the person’s ………...
3. Employees in a highly ……….. culture expect the managers to act as strong leaders as they
are uncomfortable with the leaders delegating discretionary decisions.
5. An employee participation programme may fail because of the national culture’s disbelief
and ……….. in participatory programmes.
6. ……….. managers are highly pragmatic; high achievement and competence orientation;
emphasis on profit maximisation, organisational efficiency and productivity.
7. Indian managers are highly ……….., strong focus on transition compliance and competence.
International projects are successful only when emphasis is given to those factors that are
particularly vulnerable in cross-cultural settings and on building the team capable of dealing
with the challenge presented. It is common practice in bi-national projects to have formal
authority shared by two people one from each country. The challenge in the international
business and team building boils down to create a convergence of people differing personal
inputs towards the set of common final inputs. This means developing a process that facilities
communication and understanding between the people of different national cultures. Making
this process happen signifies the difference between successes and failure of the international
projects.
The secret is to transform the way people do things at the beginning of the project into more
effective behaviour as the project moves along. This transformation initially involves identifying
the inter-cultural differences among the parties. Once this is done, a programme of inter-cultural
team building is called for in order to make the transformation take place. The result of the team
building process is influencing the behaviour of the group toward meeting the project’s goals.
Inter-cultural team building thus calls for developing and conducting a programme that will
help transform the participants’ inputs into project outputs.
Experience in managing bi-national projects indicate that for cultural convergence to take place,
managers of both sides need to understand the culture of the other, analysing the different
patterns that make up that culture. This means learning about the other country’s history,
geography, economy, religion, tradition and politics. Both sides, therefore, need to become
aware of the basic differences involving educational levels, professional experience, and
experience on this kind of project, knowledge of language and host-country way of life.
Apart from this information, which can be readily obtained and assimilated, other perceptions
must be taken into account, such as beliefs, feelings, informal behaviour patterns, group norms
and values. All these factors strongly affect behaviour of project managers and team members.
Cross-cultural team building must take place so that individuals’ inputs can be channelled to
meet the project goals.
The success of a project depends as much on the project leader as on the dynamics of the project
team. A dynamic team is a high-performance team, one that utilises its energy to meet cost and
time schedules and solves uncertainties that arise in project implementation by joint problem-
solving and combined effort. All dynamic teams have certain characteristics which can be assessed
or developed through team building exercises. They are as under:
In order to develop the cross-cultural teams, it is important that there should be a proper
learning process. In the cross-cultural context, Hughes-Weiner qualifies the learning process
described by Kolb as follows:
1. Concrete experience: people from different cultures are likely to have different backgrounds
and different experiences.
3. Abstract conceptualisation: because people from different cultures have different cognitive Notes
frameworks, this may lead them to focus on irrelevant information or misinterpretations
in a particular situation, thus drawing wrong conclusions and theories in a different
cultural situation from their own.
Notes A cross-cultural differences between British, Indian and East African managers in
two broad learning styles shows: an ‘analysis’ orientation and an ‘action’ orientation.
The experiential model largely reflects approaches to management educational and training
accepted in the Anglo-Saxon world which is based heavily on the concept of the independent
learner, the instructor as facilitator and the value of interactive and experiential methods of
education.
In order to partly overcome the problems of simply transposing the experiential model onto
other cultures, Jackson reformulated the Kolb model. He proposes four learning modalities as
follows.
2. Perception: learners are more intuitive about sorting and judging information, or are
rational in a step-by-step approach in judging the quality of information that is the basis
for making decisions.
3. Cognitive: learners are more subjective in the way that they make decisions and solve
problems based on personal judgement, or base their decision making more on logic and
scientific approaches.
4. Control (labelled ‘behaviour’): learners prefer to rely on their own initiative, or on the
direction of an instructor.
Results from surveying management ‘learners’ across the UK, France, Germany, Poland, Taiwan
and Lithuania are discussed as follows:
Receptivity Modality: In the practical-theoretical dimension the main difference exists between
the Polish and French groups, with the Polish management learners having an overriding
preference for practical educational stimuli, whilst the French have a comparatively theoretical
preference. The learners from Taiwan are the most socially oriented, expressing a preference for
learning with others. The Lithuanian learners are somewhat different to the Polish on this
dimension, in that they have a comparatively greater preference for learning from reading text,
but prefer to explore how to do things rather than looking at underlying concepts. The British
too are social learners with a preference for practical activity and learning by doing. The German
learners express a preference for learning by doing and learning from simulations in the
classroom.
Perceptual Modality: Again, on the intuitive-rational dimension, the Polish learners account
for the major differences. They express an overriding preference for dealing with information
and ideas in a rational way. British learners express this preference most strongly. Both
Lithuanian learners and those from Taiwan express a preference more strongly for practicality
over ingenuity.
Notes Cognitive Modality: The Poles and Lithuanians and German learners show the greatest
preference for decision making through logical processes, with the learners from France, Britain
and Taiwan being the most subjective in their approaches to making decisions.
Behaviour Modality: The learners from Poland and Taiwan show the greatest preference for an
instructor-directed approach, with the Germans and Lithuanians the least so. The French have
the least preference for self-initiated learning, with the Germans and then British preferring a
self-initiated approach.
Did u know? Cultural cringe is an internalised inferiority complex which causes people in
a country to dismiss their own culture as inferior to the cultures of other countries. It is
related to the concept of colonial mentality, It can also be manifested in individuals in the
form of ‘Cultural alienation’. In many cases, cultural cringe, or an equivalent term, is an
accusation made by a fellow-national, who decries the inferiority complex and asserts the
merits of the national culture.
Self Assessment
8. It is common practice in ……… projects to have formal authority shared by two people
one from each country.
9. For cultural ……… to take place, managers of both sides need to understand the culture of
the other, analysing the different patterns that make up that culture.
10. The success of a project depends as much on the project ……… leader as on the dynamics
of the ……… team.
Human Resource is the most important asset for any organisation and it is the source of achieving
competitive advantage. Managing human resources is very challenging as compared to managing
technology or capital and for its effective management, organisation requires effective HRM
system. HRM system should be backed up by sound HRM practices. HRM practices refer to
organisational activities directed at managing the pool of human resources and ensuring that
the resources are employed towards the fulfilment of organisational goals.
Indian managers are more responsive to the human and bureaucratic consequences of their
actions. They are more influenced by positions and approaches which utilise philosophical and
moral justifications. They are more responsive to internal reward and controls. Because India
has a larger proportion of moralistic managers, change in managers is likely to be slower and
more difficult. Indian managers, at both middle and senior levels in organisations, possesses a
belief in group-based, participative decision-making, but have little faith in the capacity of
workers for taking initiative and responsibility. Indian managers favour labour and government
intervention in the affairs of the organisation. Middle-level managers in India espouse a greater-
belief in change and are less conservative.
In Indian culture, handshakes are acceptable but the most prevalent way of greeting is by
putting both the palms together in front of the chest (namaste). Back slapping and touching are
not accepted at all. Indians are very tolerant of outsiders and acknowledge that there are Notes
unfamiliarity of local customs and procedures among them.
HRD practices in Indian companies attempt to blend Western and Eastern ideas and systems of
people management. This concept of HRD attempts to be more comprehensive and meaningful.
For foreign firms, part of the attraction has been the low cost of Indian labour. However, the
competitiveness of India in terms of the availability, qualifications, and skills of its human
resources is considered to be one of the lowest in the world.
Example: The Indian software industry is highly competitive – Indian firms do not just
compete on price, but on the basis of quality, innovation, and technical expertise, and draw on
a huge pool of relatively low-cost, technically-qualified, English-speaking software professionals.
In 1996, 104 firms out of the Fortune 500 outsource their software development to India. About
10% of Microsoft’s 20,000 worldwide workforces are Indian.
HRD places a premium on the dignity and respect of people and is based on a belief in the
limitless potential of human beings. It stresses that people should not be treated as mere cogs in
the wheel of production, but with respect.
Did u know? In a recent survey of Indian CEO’s, it was suggested that Indian managerial
leaders were less dependent on their personal charisma, but they emphasised logical and
step by step implementation processes. Indian leaders focused on empowerment and
accountability in cases of critical turnaround challenges, innovative challenges, innovative
technology, product planning and marketing or when other similar challenges were
encountered (Spencer, Rajah, Narayan, Mohan & Latiri 2007).
Most people in the United States work in the service sector, which accounts for 73% of all civilian
employees, with only 24% in the manufacturing and transportation sectors and less than 3% in
agriculture. The American workplace is undergoing radical changes in response to greater
domestic and global competition, including work systems innovations that are designed to
increase productivity, reduce costs and improve quality. New human resource practices are
being implemented in work process design, employee stock ownership, outsourcing and
contingent employment.
Hence a key purpose such as “to achieve the organisation’s objectives and continuously improve
its performance” will be traced down to the individual’s behavioral level, and performance will
be judged on prescribed criteria. Individuals can also be trained in these competencies where
they have a deficiency. Thus selection, appraisal, reward, promotion and training systems can
be lined into human resource management systems aimed at the achievement of organisational
goals.
American managers are very individualistic and they value individual rewards and decision
over group performance. They have relatively low power distance. They are not upset when
Notes others have more powers than they do. They are taught that everyone is equal, so they are not
impressed by the important jobs/titles. They are optimistic about the people’s motivation and
capacities.
Americans believe that man has power to control nature and spend huge amount on space
research, biotech, etc. they believe that self-identification is achieved through action and
performance. They are low-context cultured society and ignore the non-verbal behaviour. For
the American managers, the single most important criteria are to have a successful career is
ambition, drive and a pragmatic individualistic achievement-oriented assessment system.
Caselet HRM Problems
T
here is one company XYZ in which there are 4 employees Radha (26 yrs/Engaged
to Avinash/working/Ambitious) John (bachelor, 20 yrs old ) Avinash( 30 yrs old/
Engaged to Radha, Dominating character) Aslam (45 yr old/married and settled in
life/superior in the org)
Avinash doesn’t want Radha to be working at his level. John is a buddy to Radha but still
is jealous of her achievements. Aslam feels women should not be working, kind of having
old mentality.
The management makes a decision to move the supervisor out of the org and make one of
the 4 as the new supervisor. Radha is chosen as the new supervisor. The rest of the guys are
not happy with her promotion.
Scenario – The business make a profit of 10 crores every year. And the last year it was 12
crores. Suddenly management says to her that she should make 10 crores in the next 2
quarters (6 months). Radha doesn’t have any choice since if she doesn’t make it Avinash
will be promoted in her place. And Avinash is so upset with Radha that he will ditch her
if she fails then. Also he is not happy to work under her as he is engaged to her.
Aslam is a senior guy and feels very bad to report to Radha, John is ok to report to Radha
but has no respect for Radha. What would you suggest Radha should she reach out for
help?
Source: http://toostep.com/idea/hr-case-study
Human practices in Japan are characterised by lifetime employment and seniority-based pay
and promotion. Japanese places a high stress on the security of the job as the basic social factor.
Employees have largely been recruited from school levels or university graduates, rather than
experienced workers trained by other companies. They are started at a lower level of pay. Their
induction programme and training is designed to encourage them to conform, as well as
developing skills. Regular pay increases and career advancement are provided on the basis of
age and increases and career advancement are provided on the basis of age and length of service
to the company.
Unions based on the enterprises and comprising all employees in the company regardless of job
or occupation have been the dominant form of trade union and reflect the principles of loyalty,
the corporate family and obedience. They are involved in wage bargaining and resolving
workplace problems.
Japanese system of human resource management reflects these principles and provides a more Notes
systematic appreciation of the connections between the various factors involved; strategies to
internalise the labour market are based on the environment factors of relative stability including
an ageing workforce as well as technological innovation.
The main features of the Japanese Human Resource management are community orientation,
seniority-based promotion and salary system, class egalitarianism groupism, information sharing
and employee participation, employment security and flexible job behaviour. Factors that are
transferable to overseas subsidiaries are: community orientation, class egalitarianism, job security,
and worker participation. Factors that are difficult to transfer are: group-orientation behaviour,
wage and promotion seniority system.
Japanese are more anxiety-prone and have a high job stress. Employees place high premium on
job security, career planning, and health insurance and retirement beliefs. They are more
entrepreneurial, innovative and exhibit less emotional resistance to change. Japan has a high
muscularity index and so it places a great importance on earnings, recognitions and challenges.
They have a good orientation towards human nature. They focus on self-control. They follow an
indirect style of communication and agreements between the members tend to be spoken rather
than written.
Japanese methods and principles of people management focus on gaining mutual commitment
of people and the corporation. The corporation is seen as a family that looks after its own.
Motivation should be seen within the whole context of mutual loyalty and commitment. The
way performance is both conceived and rewarded in western organisations by performance-
related rewards, payment by seniority in Japanese organisations is valued as a way of rewarding
commitment to the corporation.
Japanese managers are highly pragmatic, lay strong emphasis on growth and size. They value
competence, achievement, dedication and loyalty.
4. Orderliness, patience and seeing a task through; well defined status and roles (class
distinctions); little mobility and a preference not to make changes for the sake of change;
5. Making the best of things and playing the game right, not necessarily to win, but to ensure
fairplay;
8. Regard for pragmatism and common sense in the work situation rather than precise rules,
but a strong sense of order and tradition means rules that are spelt out will be obeyed;
11. Meetings are important and managers are expected to be good communicators;
Notes 12. Individualism, which is reflected in non-conformity rather than competitiveness, but
needing group consensus in order to make a stand;
13. Work is motivating when seen to be useful to self and others striving towards a common
goal;
14. Social control based on persuasion and appeal to sense of guilt in transgressing social
norms.
A person who advances through the system beginning as a worker, then moving up to foreman
and finally middle management will gain comparatively little power influence. Power structures
are not well installed because of a lack of managers, and may come into shape as a result of
necessity. The respect for hierarchy and authority may be rooted, together with a regard for age
as a source of authority.
There is a strong avoidance of uncertainty among Chinese with a strong desire to maintain
social order with a degree of predictability. The Chinese manager may well be motivated to
save ‘face’ and to tell the other person what he wants to hear, rather than what may be regarded
as the absolute truth in Western eyes. The concept of masculinity represents an emphasis on
competition and the centrality of work in one’s life which is lacking in the Chinese individuals.
Chinese believes in guanxi which means good connections.
Collectivism is high in Chinese culture, with the main group of reference being the family.
Praising an individual Chinese in public may embarrass them. China is characterised by long-
term values such as thrift and perseverance. This is believed to sustain steady economic growth.
Chinese employees now prefer reward differentials “determined primarily according to
individual contributions” and there is greater acceptance of wider reward disparities based on
individual performance.
The training and development function does exist in China. It is still passive and narrowly
defined “in contrast to the Western HRM notion of planning for long-term staff development.”
Training is more focused on improving current performance deficiencies. The absence of career
development plus a high emphasis on material incentives have partly contributed to the problems
of high turnover and ‘disloyalty’ observed in many enterprises.
As more foreign multinationals expand their business into China, they have sought local
management for their operations in order to develop a large corporate presence in China. When
hiring Chinese nationals for executive jobs, many multinationals have found that Chinese
managers lack decision-making skills and are wary of taking personal initiatives. Along with
job-related skills, corporate management training programmes are required that provide HRM
skills appropriate to the Chinese context and skills for problem-solving in high-pressure
situations.
One of the noteworthy features of the Indian workplace is demographic uniqueness. India will
have a larger workforce than China in years to come. When India’s young demographic bubble
begins to reach working age, India will need far more jobs than currently exist to keep living
standards from declining. India today doesn’t have enough good jobs for its existing workers,
much less for millions of new ones. If it cannot better educate its children and create jobs for then
once they reach working age, India faces a population time bomb, the nation will grow poorer
and not richer, with hundred of millions of people stuck in poverty.
With the retirement age being 55 to 58 years of age in most public sector organisations, Indian Notes
workplaces are dominated by youth. Increasing the retirement age in critical areas like
universities, schools, hospitals, research institutions and public service is a topic of considerable
current debate and agenda of political parties.
The divergent view, that each society has a unique set of national nuances, which guide particular
managerial beliefs and actions, is being challenged in Indian society. An emerging dominant
perspective is the influence of globalisation on technological advancements, business
management, education and communication infrastructures is leading to a converging effect on
managerial mindsets and business behaviours. And when India embraced liberalisation and
economic reform in the early 1990s, dramatic changes were set in motion in terms of corporate
mindsets and HRM practices as a result of global imperatives and accompanying changes in
societal priorities. Indeed, the onset of a burgeoning competitive service sector compelled a
demographic shift in worker educational status and heightened the demand for job relevant
skills as well as regional diversity. Expectedly, there has been a marked shift towards valuing
human resources (HR) in Indian organisations as they become increasingly strategy driven as
opposed to the culture of the status quo. Accordingly, competitive advantage in industries like
software services, pharmaceuticals, and biotechnology (where India is seeking to assert global
dominance), the significance of HRs is being emphasised. These relativities were demonstrated
in a recent study of three global Indian companies with (235 managers) when evidence was
presented that positively linked the HRM practices with organisational performance (Khandekar
& Sharma 2005). In spite of this trend of convergence, a deep sense of locality exists creating
more robust ‘cross vergence’ in the conceptual as well as practical domain.
Source: http://rphrm.curtin.edu.au/2007/issue2/india.html
Figure 14.1 presents the key drivers for contemporary Indian HRM trends. In Figure 14.1, there
are four external spheres of intervention for HRM professionals and these spheres are integrated
in a complex array within organisational settings. The intellectual sphere, which emphasises the
Notes mindset transaction in work organisations, has been significantly impacted by the forces of
globalisation. Indeed, Chatterjee and Pearson (2000) argued, with supporting empirical evidence
from 421 senior level Indian managers, that many of the traditional Indian values (respect for
seniority, status and group affiliation) have been complemented by newer areas of attention
that are more usually linked to globalisation, such as work quality, customer service and
innovation. The most important work related attribute of the study was the opportunity to learn
new things at work. Such cross verging trends need to be understood more widely as practitioners
face a new reality of human resource development of post industrial economic organisations.
The other three spheres, of Figure 14.1, namely the emotional, the socio cultural and the
managerial domains are undergoing, similar profound changes. For instance, the socio cultural
sphere confronts the dialects of the national macro level reform agenda as well as the challenge
of innovating by addressing the hygiene and motivational features of the work place.
Consequently, this sphere has the opportunity to leverage work setting creativity in dimensions
of autonomy, empowerment, multi-skilling and various types of job design. And the emotional
sphere, which focuses on creativity and innovation to encapsulate the notions of workplace
commitment and collaboration as well as favourable teamwork, brings desirable behavioural
elements of transparency and integrity into organisational procedures and practices. The
managerial sphere provides the mechanisms for shifting mindsets, for in Indian
organisations HRM is viewed to be closely aligned with managerial technical competency.
Thus, understanding of the relativity of HRM to strategic intended organisational performance
is less well articulated in Indian firms. The current emphasis of reconfiguring cadres (voluntary
and non-voluntary redundancy schemes), downsizing, delayering and similar arrangements
will become less relevant as holistic perspectives gain ground. A hallmark of future Indian
workplaces is likely to be a dominant emphasis on managerial training, structural redesign and
reframing of institutional architectures to achieve enterprise excellence. Thus, a primary role of
Indian managers will be to forge new employment and industrial relationships through
purposeful HRM policies and practices.
Task You are the HR manager at UK based firm. Analyse the strategies you will use to
get the work done from the people.
Self Assessment
11. Indian managers are least responsive to the human and bureaucratic consequences of their
actions.
12. In Indian culture, handshakes are acceptable but the most prevalent way of greeting is by
handshake.
13. American managers are very individualistic and they value individual rewards and decision
over group performance.
15. Seniority-based promotion and salary system is a main feature of the Japanese Human
Resource management.
Notes
Case Study
K
iran Kumar ran from pillar to post for a loan to be sanctioned, for his project.
Banks were not ready to fund his project. He desperately needed the seed money
for his new venture, of starting his own software company. He understood the
TINA syndrome – There Is No Alternative. So, he decided to sell his princely possession –
his house, to fund his project.
In 1998, he started his dream company and christened it as ‘Softtech’, which had 45
employees and 60 terminals. Kiran’s past experience in various IT companies helped him
learn the nuances of this trade. Softtech survived the IT slump during the year 2000, the
company kept thriving very well. By 2005, there were 700 employees working in two
branches.
In India, the employability ratio is a mere 8: 100. In Tamilnadu alone around 80,000
engineering students remain jobless even 2 years after completing their course. Since,
Softtech was relatively a small company; it did not attract the cream of students. Mediocre
students also applied. However, Softtech preferred to recruit and select applicant’s with at
least a year of experience in their kitty.
At this juncture, a peculiar problem starred at the HR team of Softtech. Most of the
credentials, such as the experience certificates submitted, were faked. There were small
companies, which sold these certificates to students who had remained jobless over a
period of time, to fill the time gap. The price, which these companies charged were nominal
and several availed this shortcut.
The HR team was startled to know after some peering into the documents that, most of
their current employees had also submitted fake documents. Candidates, who had applied,
had also quoted false details about their work history, in their CV’s. The HR team realised
this was a common problem faced by the entire industry. How do we stop fake resumes
doing the rounds, was the question in everybody’s mind.
The HR team alerted the chairman Kiran Kumar about it. In an ad hoc meeting that was
hurriedly convened, some suggested that the offenders must be flushed out, while others
were afraid of finding replacements if that was done.
The company had a policy of selecting candidates with at least a year’s experience. It was
decided that the company’s policy of selecting people with prior experience alone, be
scrapped, save a few key designations.
Questions
1. Do you think that tampering the company’s policy will solve the problem?
2. What are your suggestions to stop fake CV’s doing the rounds?
Source: hrlink.in/news/faked-an-hr-case-study
14.4 Summary
Global leadership is a complex process for the organisation. The success and failure of the
global leaders depends on the extent to which they adapt themselves to the cultural
orientation of the foreign countries.
Notes Leadership quality is highly dynamic concept which varies nationally due to perceived
differences in the values and beliefs of the people internationally.
The leadership orientation of the managers varies across nations. These are due to the vast
differences in the values between the national groups.
Leader plays an important role in the organisation. The extent to which they carry their
status into the wider context outside the workplace through their professional activity is
significant.
International projects are successful only when emphasis is given to those factors that are
particularly vulnerable in cross-cultural settings and on building the team capable of
dealing with the challenge presented.
The secret is to transform the way people do things at the beginning of the project into
more effective behaviour as the project moves along.
Experience in managing bi-national projects indicate that for cultural convergence to take
place, managers of both sides need to understand the culture of the other, analysing the
different patterns that make up that culture.
The success of a project depends as much on the project leader as on the dynamics of the
project team. A dynamic team is a high-performance team, one that utilises its energy to
meet cost and time schedules and solves uncertainties that arise in project implementation
by joint problem-solving and combined effort.
Human Resource is the most important asset for any organisation and it is the source of
achieving competitive advantage.
Japanese employees were discovered to have a higher work centrality than those in the
USA, who had a higher work centrality than those in the former West German.
Global companies should consider these differences across cultures for their success in
managing the people internationally.
14.5 Keywords
Egalitarianism: The doctrine of the equality of mankind and the desirability of political and
economic and social equality.
HRM Practices: HRM practices refer to organisational activities directed at managing the pool
of human resources and ensuring that the resources are employed towards the fulfilment of
organisational goals.
Human Resource Management (HRM): Human Resource Management is the process of managing
people in organisations in a structured and thorough manner.
Individualism: A cultural dimension that focuses on the degree to which a society reinforces
individual or collective achievement and interpersonal relationships.
Masculinity: This dimension pertains to the degree societies reinforce, or do not reinforce, the
traditional masculine work role model of male achievement, control, and power.
Power Distance: Power distance is the extent to which less powerful members of institutions
and organisations within a country expect and accept that power is distributed unequally.
Uncertainty Avoidance: This dimension concerns the level of acceptance for uncertainty and
ambiguity within a society.
1. “The managerial style of leadership varies due to cultural differences.” Justify this statement
giving the contrasting role of leadership in international firms.
3. Enlist the significant leadership values that are found in the successful managers in different
regions of the world.
5. “All dynamic teams have certain characteristics which can be assessed or developed through
team building exercises.” Elaborate.
8. How are human resource practices in Japan different and similar to Indian HRM?
1. Cultural 2. Behaviour
3. Power-distance 4. Directive
5. Distrust 6. US
7. Individualistic 8. Bi-national
17. False
P.L. Rao, International Human Resource Management, First Edition, Excel Books,
New Delhi, 2008.
http://people.f3.htw-berlin.de/Professoren/Arora/discussion_paper/
Foreign_Multinationals_in_India-Dayanand_Arora.pdf
http://www.iobm.edu.pk/PBR/PBR_1201/120103_HRM%20Practices%20
Tiwari%2037.pdf
http://www.kwintessential.co.uk/intercultural/dimensions.html